github.com/s1s1ty/go@v0.0.0-20180207192209-104445e3140f/src/compress/testdata/Mark.Twain-Tom.Sawyer.txt (about)

     1  Produced by David Widger. The previous edition was updated by Jose
     2  Menendez.
     3  
     4  
     5  
     6  
     7  
     8                     THE ADVENTURES OF TOM SAWYER
     9                                  BY
    10                              MARK TWAIN
    11                       (Samuel Langhorne Clemens)
    12  
    13  
    14  
    15  
    16                             P R E F A C E
    17  
    18  MOST of the adventures recorded in this book really occurred; one or
    19  two were experiences of my own, the rest those of boys who were
    20  schoolmates of mine. Huck Finn is drawn from life; Tom Sawyer also, but
    21  not from an individual--he is a combination of the characteristics of
    22  three boys whom I knew, and therefore belongs to the composite order of
    23  architecture.
    24  
    25  The odd superstitions touched upon were all prevalent among children
    26  and slaves in the West at the period of this story--that is to say,
    27  thirty or forty years ago.
    28  
    29  Although my book is intended mainly for the entertainment of boys and
    30  girls, I hope it will not be shunned by men and women on that account,
    31  for part of my plan has been to try to pleasantly remind adults of what
    32  they once were themselves, and of how they felt and thought and talked,
    33  and what queer enterprises they sometimes engaged in.
    34  
    35                                                              THE AUTHOR.
    36  
    37  HARTFORD, 1876.
    38  
    39  
    40  
    41                            T O M   S A W Y E R
    42  
    43  
    44  
    45  CHAPTER I
    46  
    47  "TOM!"
    48  
    49  No answer.
    50  
    51  "TOM!"
    52  
    53  No answer.
    54  
    55  "What's gone with that boy,  I wonder? You TOM!"
    56  
    57  No answer.
    58  
    59  The old lady pulled her spectacles down and looked over them about the
    60  room; then she put them up and looked out under them. She seldom or
    61  never looked THROUGH them for so small a thing as a boy; they were her
    62  state pair, the pride of her heart, and were built for "style," not
    63  service--she could have seen through a pair of stove-lids just as well.
    64  She looked perplexed for a moment, and then said, not fiercely, but
    65  still loud enough for the furniture to hear:
    66  
    67  "Well, I lay if I get hold of you I'll--"
    68  
    69  She did not finish, for by this time she was bending down and punching
    70  under the bed with the broom, and so she needed breath to punctuate the
    71  punches with. She resurrected nothing but the cat.
    72  
    73  "I never did see the beat of that boy!"
    74  
    75  She went to the open door and stood in it and looked out among the
    76  tomato vines and "jimpson" weeds that constituted the garden. No Tom.
    77  So she lifted up her voice at an angle calculated for distance and
    78  shouted:
    79  
    80  "Y-o-u-u TOM!"
    81  
    82  There was a slight noise behind her and she turned just in time to
    83  seize a small boy by the slack of his roundabout and arrest his flight.
    84  
    85  "There! I might 'a' thought of that closet. What you been doing in
    86  there?"
    87  
    88  "Nothing."
    89  
    90  "Nothing! Look at your hands. And look at your mouth. What IS that
    91  truck?"
    92  
    93  "I don't know, aunt."
    94  
    95  "Well, I know. It's jam--that's what it is. Forty times I've said if
    96  you didn't let that jam alone I'd skin you. Hand me that switch."
    97  
    98  The switch hovered in the air--the peril was desperate--
    99  
   100  "My! Look behind you, aunt!"
   101  
   102  The old lady whirled round, and snatched her skirts out of danger. The
   103  lad fled on the instant, scrambled up the high board-fence, and
   104  disappeared over it.
   105  
   106  His aunt Polly stood surprised a moment, and then broke into a gentle
   107  laugh.
   108  
   109  "Hang the boy, can't I never learn anything? Ain't he played me tricks
   110  enough like that for me to be looking out for him by this time? But old
   111  fools is the biggest fools there is. Can't learn an old dog new tricks,
   112  as the saying is. But my goodness, he never plays them alike, two days,
   113  and how is a body to know what's coming? He 'pears to know just how
   114  long he can torment me before I get my dander up, and he knows if he
   115  can make out to put me off for a minute or make me laugh, it's all down
   116  again and I can't hit him a lick. I ain't doing my duty by that boy,
   117  and that's the Lord's truth, goodness knows. Spare the rod and spile
   118  the child, as the Good Book says. I'm a laying up sin and suffering for
   119  us both, I know. He's full of the Old Scratch, but laws-a-me! he's my
   120  own dead sister's boy, poor thing, and I ain't got the heart to lash
   121  him, somehow. Every time I let him off, my conscience does hurt me so,
   122  and every time I hit him my old heart most breaks. Well-a-well, man
   123  that is born of woman is of few days and full of trouble, as the
   124  Scripture says, and I reckon it's so. He'll play hookey this evening, *
   125  and [* Southwestern for "afternoon"] I'll just be obleeged to make him
   126  work, to-morrow, to punish him. It's mighty hard to make him work
   127  Saturdays, when all the boys is having holiday, but he hates work more
   128  than he hates anything else, and I've GOT to do some of my duty by him,
   129  or I'll be the ruination of the child."
   130  
   131  Tom did play hookey, and he had a very good time. He got back home
   132  barely in season to help Jim, the small colored boy, saw next-day's
   133  wood and split the kindlings before supper--at least he was there in
   134  time to tell his adventures to Jim while Jim did three-fourths of the
   135  work. Tom's younger brother (or rather half-brother) Sid was already
   136  through with his part of the work (picking up chips), for he was a
   137  quiet boy, and had no adventurous, troublesome ways.
   138  
   139  While Tom was eating his supper, and stealing sugar as opportunity
   140  offered, Aunt Polly asked him questions that were full of guile, and
   141  very deep--for she wanted to trap him into damaging revealments. Like
   142  many other simple-hearted souls, it was her pet vanity to believe she
   143  was endowed with a talent for dark and mysterious diplomacy, and she
   144  loved to contemplate her most transparent devices as marvels of low
   145  cunning. Said she:
   146  
   147  "Tom, it was middling warm in school, warn't it?"
   148  
   149  "Yes'm."
   150  
   151  "Powerful warm, warn't it?"
   152  
   153  "Yes'm."
   154  
   155  "Didn't you want to go in a-swimming, Tom?"
   156  
   157  A bit of a scare shot through Tom--a touch of uncomfortable suspicion.
   158  He searched Aunt Polly's face, but it told him nothing. So he said:
   159  
   160  "No'm--well, not very much."
   161  
   162  The old lady reached out her hand and felt Tom's shirt, and said:
   163  
   164  "But you ain't too warm now, though." And it flattered her to reflect
   165  that she had discovered that the shirt was dry without anybody knowing
   166  that that was what she had in her mind. But in spite of her, Tom knew
   167  where the wind lay, now. So he forestalled what might be the next move:
   168  
   169  "Some of us pumped on our heads--mine's damp yet. See?"
   170  
   171  Aunt Polly was vexed to think she had overlooked that bit of
   172  circumstantial evidence, and missed a trick. Then she had a new
   173  inspiration:
   174  
   175  "Tom, you didn't have to undo your shirt collar where I sewed it, to
   176  pump on your head, did you? Unbutton your jacket!"
   177  
   178  The trouble vanished out of Tom's face. He opened his jacket. His
   179  shirt collar was securely sewed.
   180  
   181  "Bother! Well, go 'long with you. I'd made sure you'd played hookey
   182  and been a-swimming. But I forgive ye, Tom. I reckon you're a kind of a
   183  singed cat, as the saying is--better'n you look. THIS time."
   184  
   185  She was half sorry her sagacity had miscarried, and half glad that Tom
   186  had stumbled into obedient conduct for once.
   187  
   188  But Sidney said:
   189  
   190  "Well, now, if I didn't think you sewed his collar with white thread,
   191  but it's black."
   192  
   193  "Why, I did sew it with white! Tom!"
   194  
   195  But Tom did not wait for the rest. As he went out at the door he said:
   196  
   197  "Siddy, I'll lick you for that."
   198  
   199  In a safe place Tom examined two large needles which were thrust into
   200  the lapels of his jacket, and had thread bound about them--one needle
   201  carried white thread and the other black. He said:
   202  
   203  "She'd never noticed if it hadn't been for Sid. Confound it! sometimes
   204  she sews it with white, and sometimes she sews it with black. I wish to
   205  geeminy she'd stick to one or t'other--I can't keep the run of 'em. But
   206  I bet you I'll lam Sid for that. I'll learn him!"
   207  
   208  He was not the Model Boy of the village. He knew the model boy very
   209  well though--and loathed him.
   210  
   211  Within two minutes, or even less, he had forgotten all his troubles.
   212  Not because his troubles were one whit less heavy and bitter to him
   213  than a man's are to a man, but because a new and powerful interest bore
   214  them down and drove them out of his mind for the time--just as men's
   215  misfortunes are forgotten in the excitement of new enterprises. This
   216  new interest was a valued novelty in whistling, which he had just
   217  acquired from a negro, and he was suffering to practise it undisturbed.
   218  It consisted in a peculiar bird-like turn, a sort of liquid warble,
   219  produced by touching the tongue to the roof of the mouth at short
   220  intervals in the midst of the music--the reader probably remembers how
   221  to do it, if he has ever been a boy. Diligence and attention soon gave
   222  him the knack of it, and he strode down the street with his mouth full
   223  of harmony and his soul full of gratitude. He felt much as an
   224  astronomer feels who has discovered a new planet--no doubt, as far as
   225  strong, deep, unalloyed pleasure is concerned, the advantage was with
   226  the boy, not the astronomer.
   227  
   228  The summer evenings were long. It was not dark, yet. Presently Tom
   229  checked his whistle. A stranger was before him--a boy a shade larger
   230  than himself. A new-comer of any age or either sex was an impressive
   231  curiosity in the poor little shabby village of St. Petersburg. This boy
   232  was well dressed, too--well dressed on a week-day. This was simply
   233  astounding. His cap was a dainty thing, his close-buttoned blue cloth
   234  roundabout was new and natty, and so were his pantaloons. He had shoes
   235  on--and it was only Friday. He even wore a necktie, a bright bit of
   236  ribbon. He had a citified air about him that ate into Tom's vitals. The
   237  more Tom stared at the splendid marvel, the higher he turned up his
   238  nose at his finery and the shabbier and shabbier his own outfit seemed
   239  to him to grow. Neither boy spoke. If one moved, the other moved--but
   240  only sidewise, in a circle; they kept face to face and eye to eye all
   241  the time. Finally Tom said:
   242  
   243  "I can lick you!"
   244  
   245  "I'd like to see you try it."
   246  
   247  "Well, I can do it."
   248  
   249  "No you can't, either."
   250  
   251  "Yes I can."
   252  
   253  "No you can't."
   254  
   255  "I can."
   256  
   257  "You can't."
   258  
   259  "Can!"
   260  
   261  "Can't!"
   262  
   263  An uncomfortable pause. Then Tom said:
   264  
   265  "What's your name?"
   266  
   267  "'Tisn't any of your business, maybe."
   268  
   269  "Well I 'low I'll MAKE it my business."
   270  
   271  "Well why don't you?"
   272  
   273  "If you say much, I will."
   274  
   275  "Much--much--MUCH. There now."
   276  
   277  "Oh, you think you're mighty smart, DON'T you? I could lick you with
   278  one hand tied behind me, if I wanted to."
   279  
   280  "Well why don't you DO it? You SAY you can do it."
   281  
   282  "Well I WILL, if you fool with me."
   283  
   284  "Oh yes--I've seen whole families in the same fix."
   285  
   286  "Smarty! You think you're SOME, now, DON'T you? Oh, what a hat!"
   287  
   288  "You can lump that hat if you don't like it. I dare you to knock it
   289  off--and anybody that'll take a dare will suck eggs."
   290  
   291  "You're a liar!"
   292  
   293  "You're another."
   294  
   295  "You're a fighting liar and dasn't take it up."
   296  
   297  "Aw--take a walk!"
   298  
   299  "Say--if you give me much more of your sass I'll take and bounce a
   300  rock off'n your head."
   301  
   302  "Oh, of COURSE you will."
   303  
   304  "Well I WILL."
   305  
   306  "Well why don't you DO it then? What do you keep SAYING you will for?
   307  Why don't you DO it? It's because you're afraid."
   308  
   309  "I AIN'T afraid."
   310  
   311  "You are."
   312  
   313  "I ain't."
   314  
   315  "You are."
   316  
   317  Another pause, and more eying and sidling around each other. Presently
   318  they were shoulder to shoulder. Tom said:
   319  
   320  "Get away from here!"
   321  
   322  "Go away yourself!"
   323  
   324  "I won't."
   325  
   326  "I won't either."
   327  
   328  So they stood, each with a foot placed at an angle as a brace, and
   329  both shoving with might and main, and glowering at each other with
   330  hate. But neither could get an advantage. After struggling till both
   331  were hot and flushed, each relaxed his strain with watchful caution,
   332  and Tom said:
   333  
   334  "You're a coward and a pup. I'll tell my big brother on you, and he
   335  can thrash you with his little finger, and I'll make him do it, too."
   336  
   337  "What do I care for your big brother? I've got a brother that's bigger
   338  than he is--and what's more, he can throw him over that fence, too."
   339  [Both brothers were imaginary.]
   340  
   341  "That's a lie."
   342  
   343  "YOUR saying so don't make it so."
   344  
   345  Tom drew a line in the dust with his big toe, and said:
   346  
   347  "I dare you to step over that, and I'll lick you till you can't stand
   348  up. Anybody that'll take a dare will steal sheep."
   349  
   350  The new boy stepped over promptly, and said:
   351  
   352  "Now you said you'd do it, now let's see you do it."
   353  
   354  "Don't you crowd me now; you better look out."
   355  
   356  "Well, you SAID you'd do it--why don't you do it?"
   357  
   358  "By jingo! for two cents I WILL do it."
   359  
   360  The new boy took two broad coppers out of his pocket and held them out
   361  with derision. Tom struck them to the ground. In an instant both boys
   362  were rolling and tumbling in the dirt, gripped together like cats; and
   363  for the space of a minute they tugged and tore at each other's hair and
   364  clothes, punched and scratched each other's nose, and covered
   365  themselves with dust and glory. Presently the confusion took form, and
   366  through the fog of battle Tom appeared, seated astride the new boy, and
   367  pounding him with his fists. "Holler 'nuff!" said he.
   368  
   369  The boy only struggled to free himself. He was crying--mainly from rage.
   370  
   371  "Holler 'nuff!"--and the pounding went on.
   372  
   373  At last the stranger got out a smothered "'Nuff!" and Tom let him up
   374  and said:
   375  
   376  "Now that'll learn you. Better look out who you're fooling with next
   377  time."
   378  
   379  The new boy went off brushing the dust from his clothes, sobbing,
   380  snuffling, and occasionally looking back and shaking his head and
   381  threatening what he would do to Tom the "next time he caught him out."
   382  To which Tom responded with jeers, and started off in high feather, and
   383  as soon as his back was turned the new boy snatched up a stone, threw
   384  it and hit him between the shoulders and then turned tail and ran like
   385  an antelope. Tom chased the traitor home, and thus found out where he
   386  lived. He then held a position at the gate for some time, daring the
   387  enemy to come outside, but the enemy only made faces at him through the
   388  window and declined. At last the enemy's mother appeared, and called
   389  Tom a bad, vicious, vulgar child, and ordered him away. So he went
   390  away; but he said he "'lowed" to "lay" for that boy.
   391  
   392  He got home pretty late that night, and when he climbed cautiously in
   393  at the window, he uncovered an ambuscade, in the person of his aunt;
   394  and when she saw the state his clothes were in her resolution to turn
   395  his Saturday holiday into captivity at hard labor became adamantine in
   396  its firmness.
   397  
   398  
   399  
   400  CHAPTER II
   401  
   402  SATURDAY morning was come, and all the summer world was bright and
   403  fresh, and brimming with life. There was a song in every heart; and if
   404  the heart was young the music issued at the lips. There was cheer in
   405  every face and a spring in every step. The locust-trees were in bloom
   406  and the fragrance of the blossoms filled the air. Cardiff Hill, beyond
   407  the village and above it, was green with vegetation and it lay just far
   408  enough away to seem a Delectable Land, dreamy, reposeful, and inviting.
   409  
   410  Tom appeared on the sidewalk with a bucket of whitewash and a
   411  long-handled brush. He surveyed the fence, and all gladness left him and
   412  a deep melancholy settled down upon his spirit. Thirty yards of board
   413  fence nine feet high. Life to him seemed hollow, and existence but a
   414  burden. Sighing, he dipped his brush and passed it along the topmost
   415  plank; repeated the operation; did it again; compared the insignificant
   416  whitewashed streak with the far-reaching continent of unwhitewashed
   417  fence, and sat down on a tree-box discouraged. Jim came skipping out at
   418  the gate with a tin pail, and singing Buffalo Gals. Bringing water from
   419  the town pump had always been hateful work in Tom's eyes, before, but
   420  now it did not strike him so. He remembered that there was company at
   421  the pump. White, mulatto, and negro boys and girls were always there
   422  waiting their turns, resting, trading playthings, quarrelling,
   423  fighting, skylarking. And he remembered that although the pump was only
   424  a hundred and fifty yards off, Jim never got back with a bucket of
   425  water under an hour--and even then somebody generally had to go after
   426  him. Tom said:
   427  
   428  "Say, Jim, I'll fetch the water if you'll whitewash some."
   429  
   430  Jim shook his head and said:
   431  
   432  "Can't, Mars Tom. Ole missis, she tole me I got to go an' git dis
   433  water an' not stop foolin' roun' wid anybody. She say she spec' Mars
   434  Tom gwine to ax me to whitewash, an' so she tole me go 'long an' 'tend
   435  to my own business--she 'lowed SHE'D 'tend to de whitewashin'."
   436  
   437  "Oh, never you mind what she said, Jim. That's the way she always
   438  talks. Gimme the bucket--I won't be gone only a a minute. SHE won't
   439  ever know."
   440  
   441  "Oh, I dasn't, Mars Tom. Ole missis she'd take an' tar de head off'n
   442  me. 'Deed she would."
   443  
   444  "SHE! She never licks anybody--whacks 'em over the head with her
   445  thimble--and who cares for that, I'd like to know. She talks awful, but
   446  talk don't hurt--anyways it don't if she don't cry. Jim, I'll give you
   447  a marvel. I'll give you a white alley!"
   448  
   449  Jim began to waver.
   450  
   451  "White alley, Jim! And it's a bully taw."
   452  
   453  "My! Dat's a mighty gay marvel, I tell you! But Mars Tom I's powerful
   454  'fraid ole missis--"
   455  
   456  "And besides, if you will I'll show you my sore toe."
   457  
   458  Jim was only human--this attraction was too much for him. He put down
   459  his pail, took the white alley, and bent over the toe with absorbing
   460  interest while the bandage was being unwound. In another moment he was
   461  flying down the street with his pail and a tingling rear, Tom was
   462  whitewashing with vigor, and Aunt Polly was retiring from the field
   463  with a slipper in her hand and triumph in her eye.
   464  
   465  But Tom's energy did not last. He began to think of the fun he had
   466  planned for this day, and his sorrows multiplied. Soon the free boys
   467  would come tripping along on all sorts of delicious expeditions, and
   468  they would make a world of fun of him for having to work--the very
   469  thought of it burnt him like fire. He got out his worldly wealth and
   470  examined it--bits of toys, marbles, and trash; enough to buy an
   471  exchange of WORK, maybe, but not half enough to buy so much as half an
   472  hour of pure freedom. So he returned his straitened means to his
   473  pocket, and gave up the idea of trying to buy the boys. At this dark
   474  and hopeless moment an inspiration burst upon him! Nothing less than a
   475  great, magnificent inspiration.
   476  
   477  He took up his brush and went tranquilly to work. Ben Rogers hove in
   478  sight presently--the very boy, of all boys, whose ridicule he had been
   479  dreading. Ben's gait was the hop-skip-and-jump--proof enough that his
   480  heart was light and his anticipations high. He was eating an apple, and
   481  giving a long, melodious whoop, at intervals, followed by a deep-toned
   482  ding-dong-dong, ding-dong-dong, for he was personating a steamboat. As
   483  he drew near, he slackened speed, took the middle of the street, leaned
   484  far over to starboard and rounded to ponderously and with laborious
   485  pomp and circumstance--for he was personating the Big Missouri, and
   486  considered himself to be drawing nine feet of water. He was boat and
   487  captain and engine-bells combined, so he had to imagine himself
   488  standing on his own hurricane-deck giving the orders and executing them:
   489  
   490  "Stop her, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling!" The headway ran almost out, and he
   491  drew up slowly toward the sidewalk.
   492  
   493  "Ship up to back! Ting-a-ling-ling!" His arms straightened and
   494  stiffened down his sides.
   495  
   496  "Set her back on the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow! ch-chow-wow!
   497  Chow!" His right hand, meantime, describing stately circles--for it was
   498  representing a forty-foot wheel.
   499  
   500  "Let her go back on the labboard! Ting-a-lingling! Chow-ch-chow-chow!"
   501  The left hand began to describe circles.
   502  
   503  "Stop the stabboard! Ting-a-ling-ling! Stop the labboard! Come ahead
   504  on the stabboard! Stop her! Let your outside turn over slow!
   505  Ting-a-ling-ling! Chow-ow-ow! Get out that head-line! LIVELY now!
   506  Come--out with your spring-line--what're you about there! Take a turn
   507  round that stump with the bight of it! Stand by that stage, now--let her
   508  go! Done with the engines, sir! Ting-a-ling-ling! SH'T! S'H'T! SH'T!"
   509  (trying the gauge-cocks).
   510  
   511  Tom went on whitewashing--paid no attention to the steamboat. Ben
   512  stared a moment and then said: "Hi-YI! YOU'RE up a stump, ain't you!"
   513  
   514  No answer. Tom surveyed his last touch with the eye of an artist, then
   515  he gave his brush another gentle sweep and surveyed the result, as
   516  before. Ben ranged up alongside of him. Tom's mouth watered for the
   517  apple, but he stuck to his work. Ben said:
   518  
   519  "Hello, old chap, you got to work, hey?"
   520  
   521  Tom wheeled suddenly and said:
   522  
   523  "Why, it's you, Ben! I warn't noticing."
   524  
   525  "Say--I'm going in a-swimming, I am. Don't you wish you could? But of
   526  course you'd druther WORK--wouldn't you? Course you would!"
   527  
   528  Tom contemplated the boy a bit, and said:
   529  
   530  "What do you call work?"
   531  
   532  "Why, ain't THAT work?"
   533  
   534  Tom resumed his whitewashing, and answered carelessly:
   535  
   536  "Well, maybe it is, and maybe it ain't. All I know, is, it suits Tom
   537  Sawyer."
   538  
   539  "Oh come, now, you don't mean to let on that you LIKE it?"
   540  
   541  The brush continued to move.
   542  
   543  "Like it? Well, I don't see why I oughtn't to like it. Does a boy get
   544  a chance to whitewash a fence every day?"
   545  
   546  That put the thing in a new light. Ben stopped nibbling his apple. Tom
   547  swept his brush daintily back and forth--stepped back to note the
   548  effect--added a touch here and there--criticised the effect again--Ben
   549  watching every move and getting more and more interested, more and more
   550  absorbed. Presently he said:
   551  
   552  "Say, Tom, let ME whitewash a little."
   553  
   554  Tom considered, was about to consent; but he altered his mind:
   555  
   556  "No--no--I reckon it wouldn't hardly do, Ben. You see, Aunt Polly's
   557  awful particular about this fence--right here on the street, you know
   558  --but if it was the back fence I wouldn't mind and SHE wouldn't. Yes,
   559  she's awful particular about this fence; it's got to be done very
   560  careful; I reckon there ain't one boy in a thousand, maybe two
   561  thousand, that can do it the way it's got to be done."
   562  
   563  "No--is that so? Oh come, now--lemme just try. Only just a little--I'd
   564  let YOU, if you was me, Tom."
   565  
   566  "Ben, I'd like to, honest injun; but Aunt Polly--well, Jim wanted to
   567  do it, but she wouldn't let him; Sid wanted to do it, and she wouldn't
   568  let Sid. Now don't you see how I'm fixed? If you was to tackle this
   569  fence and anything was to happen to it--"
   570  
   571  "Oh, shucks, I'll be just as careful. Now lemme try. Say--I'll give
   572  you the core of my apple."
   573  
   574  "Well, here--No, Ben, now don't. I'm afeard--"
   575  
   576  "I'll give you ALL of it!"
   577  
   578  Tom gave up the brush with reluctance in his face, but alacrity in his
   579  heart. And while the late steamer Big Missouri worked and sweated in
   580  the sun, the retired artist sat on a barrel in the shade close by,
   581  dangled his legs, munched his apple, and planned the slaughter of more
   582  innocents. There was no lack of material; boys happened along every
   583  little while; they came to jeer, but remained to whitewash. By the time
   584  Ben was fagged out, Tom had traded the next chance to Billy Fisher for
   585  a kite, in good repair; and when he played out, Johnny Miller bought in
   586  for a dead rat and a string to swing it with--and so on, and so on,
   587  hour after hour. And when the middle of the afternoon came, from being
   588  a poor poverty-stricken boy in the morning, Tom was literally rolling
   589  in wealth. He had besides the things before mentioned, twelve marbles,
   590  part of a jews-harp, a piece of blue bottle-glass to look through, a
   591  spool cannon, a key that wouldn't unlock anything, a fragment of chalk,
   592  a glass stopper of a decanter, a tin soldier, a couple of tadpoles, six
   593  fire-crackers, a kitten with only one eye, a brass doorknob, a
   594  dog-collar--but no dog--the handle of a knife, four pieces of
   595  orange-peel, and a dilapidated old window sash.
   596  
   597  He had had a nice, good, idle time all the while--plenty of company
   598  --and the fence had three coats of whitewash on it! If he hadn't run out
   599  of whitewash he would have bankrupted every boy in the village.
   600  
   601  Tom said to himself that it was not such a hollow world, after all. He
   602  had discovered a great law of human action, without knowing it--namely,
   603  that in order to make a man or a boy covet a thing, it is only
   604  necessary to make the thing difficult to attain. If he had been a great
   605  and wise philosopher, like the writer of this book, he would now have
   606  comprehended that Work consists of whatever a body is OBLIGED to do,
   607  and that Play consists of whatever a body is not obliged to do. And
   608  this would help him to understand why constructing artificial flowers
   609  or performing on a tread-mill is work, while rolling ten-pins or
   610  climbing Mont Blanc is only amusement. There are wealthy gentlemen in
   611  England who drive four-horse passenger-coaches twenty or thirty miles
   612  on a daily line, in the summer, because the privilege costs them
   613  considerable money; but if they were offered wages for the service,
   614  that would turn it into work and then they would resign.
   615  
   616  The boy mused awhile over the substantial change which had taken place
   617  in his worldly circumstances, and then wended toward headquarters to
   618  report.
   619  
   620  
   621  
   622  CHAPTER III
   623  
   624  TOM presented himself before Aunt Polly, who was sitting by an open
   625  window in a pleasant rearward apartment, which was bedroom,
   626  breakfast-room, dining-room, and library, combined. The balmy summer
   627  air, the restful quiet, the odor of the flowers, and the drowsing murmur
   628  of the bees had had their effect, and she was nodding over her knitting
   629  --for she had no company but the cat, and it was asleep in her lap. Her
   630  spectacles were propped up on her gray head for safety. She had thought
   631  that of course Tom had deserted long ago, and she wondered at seeing him
   632  place himself in her power again in this intrepid way. He said: "Mayn't
   633  I go and play now, aunt?"
   634  
   635  "What, a'ready? How much have you done?"
   636  
   637  "It's all done, aunt."
   638  
   639  "Tom, don't lie to me--I can't bear it."
   640  
   641  "I ain't, aunt; it IS all done."
   642  
   643  Aunt Polly placed small trust in such evidence. She went out to see
   644  for herself; and she would have been content to find twenty per cent.
   645  of Tom's statement true. When she found the entire fence whitewashed,
   646  and not only whitewashed but elaborately coated and recoated, and even
   647  a streak added to the ground, her astonishment was almost unspeakable.
   648  She said:
   649  
   650  "Well, I never! There's no getting round it, you can work when you're
   651  a mind to, Tom." And then she diluted the compliment by adding, "But
   652  it's powerful seldom you're a mind to, I'm bound to say. Well, go 'long
   653  and play; but mind you get back some time in a week, or I'll tan you."
   654  
   655  She was so overcome by the splendor of his achievement that she took
   656  him into the closet and selected a choice apple and delivered it to
   657  him, along with an improving lecture upon the added value and flavor a
   658  treat took to itself when it came without sin through virtuous effort.
   659  And while she closed with a happy Scriptural flourish, he "hooked" a
   660  doughnut.
   661  
   662  Then he skipped out, and saw Sid just starting up the outside stairway
   663  that led to the back rooms on the second floor. Clods were handy and
   664  the air was full of them in a twinkling. They raged around Sid like a
   665  hail-storm; and before Aunt Polly could collect her surprised faculties
   666  and sally to the rescue, six or seven clods had taken personal effect,
   667  and Tom was over the fence and gone. There was a gate, but as a general
   668  thing he was too crowded for time to make use of it. His soul was at
   669  peace, now that he had settled with Sid for calling attention to his
   670  black thread and getting him into trouble.
   671  
   672  Tom skirted the block, and came round into a muddy alley that led by
   673  the back of his aunt's cow-stable. He presently got safely beyond the
   674  reach of capture and punishment, and hastened toward the public square
   675  of the village, where two "military" companies of boys had met for
   676  conflict, according to previous appointment. Tom was General of one of
   677  these armies, Joe Harper (a bosom friend) General of the other. These
   678  two great commanders did not condescend to fight in person--that being
   679  better suited to the still smaller fry--but sat together on an eminence
   680  and conducted the field operations by orders delivered through
   681  aides-de-camp. Tom's army won a great victory, after a long and
   682  hard-fought battle. Then the dead were counted, prisoners exchanged,
   683  the terms of the next disagreement agreed upon, and the day for the
   684  necessary battle appointed; after which the armies fell into line and
   685  marched away, and Tom turned homeward alone.
   686  
   687  As he was passing by the house where Jeff Thatcher lived, he saw a new
   688  girl in the garden--a lovely little blue-eyed creature with yellow hair
   689  plaited into two long-tails, white summer frock and embroidered
   690  pantalettes. The fresh-crowned hero fell without firing a shot. A
   691  certain Amy Lawrence vanished out of his heart and left not even a
   692  memory of herself behind. He had thought he loved her to distraction;
   693  he had regarded his passion as adoration; and behold it was only a poor
   694  little evanescent partiality. He had been months winning her; she had
   695  confessed hardly a week ago; he had been the happiest and the proudest
   696  boy in the world only seven short days, and here in one instant of time
   697  she had gone out of his heart like a casual stranger whose visit is
   698  done.
   699  
   700  He worshipped this new angel with furtive eye, till he saw that she
   701  had discovered him; then he pretended he did not know she was present,
   702  and began to "show off" in all sorts of absurd boyish ways, in order to
   703  win her admiration. He kept up this grotesque foolishness for some
   704  time; but by-and-by, while he was in the midst of some dangerous
   705  gymnastic performances, he glanced aside and saw that the little girl
   706  was wending her way toward the house. Tom came up to the fence and
   707  leaned on it, grieving, and hoping she would tarry yet awhile longer.
   708  She halted a moment on the steps and then moved toward the door. Tom
   709  heaved a great sigh as she put her foot on the threshold. But his face
   710  lit up, right away, for she tossed a pansy over the fence a moment
   711  before she disappeared.
   712  
   713  The boy ran around and stopped within a foot or two of the flower, and
   714  then shaded his eyes with his hand and began to look down street as if
   715  he had discovered something of interest going on in that direction.
   716  Presently he picked up a straw and began trying to balance it on his
   717  nose, with his head tilted far back; and as he moved from side to side,
   718  in his efforts, he edged nearer and nearer toward the pansy; finally
   719  his bare foot rested upon it, his pliant toes closed upon it, and he
   720  hopped away with the treasure and disappeared round the corner. But
   721  only for a minute--only while he could button the flower inside his
   722  jacket, next his heart--or next his stomach, possibly, for he was not
   723  much posted in anatomy, and not hypercritical, anyway.
   724  
   725  He returned, now, and hung about the fence till nightfall, "showing
   726  off," as before; but the girl never exhibited herself again, though Tom
   727  comforted himself a little with the hope that she had been near some
   728  window, meantime, and been aware of his attentions. Finally he strode
   729  home reluctantly, with his poor head full of visions.
   730  
   731  All through supper his spirits were so high that his aunt wondered
   732  "what had got into the child." He took a good scolding about clodding
   733  Sid, and did not seem to mind it in the least. He tried to steal sugar
   734  under his aunt's very nose, and got his knuckles rapped for it. He said:
   735  
   736  "Aunt, you don't whack Sid when he takes it."
   737  
   738  "Well, Sid don't torment a body the way you do. You'd be always into
   739  that sugar if I warn't watching you."
   740  
   741  Presently she stepped into the kitchen, and Sid, happy in his
   742  immunity, reached for the sugar-bowl--a sort of glorying over Tom which
   743  was wellnigh unbearable. But Sid's fingers slipped and the bowl dropped
   744  and broke. Tom was in ecstasies. In such ecstasies that he even
   745  controlled his tongue and was silent. He said to himself that he would
   746  not speak a word, even when his aunt came in, but would sit perfectly
   747  still till she asked who did the mischief; and then he would tell, and
   748  there would be nothing so good in the world as to see that pet model
   749  "catch it." He was so brimful of exultation that he could hardly hold
   750  himself when the old lady came back and stood above the wreck
   751  discharging lightnings of wrath from over her spectacles. He said to
   752  himself, "Now it's coming!" And the next instant he was sprawling on
   753  the floor! The potent palm was uplifted to strike again when Tom cried
   754  out:
   755  
   756  "Hold on, now, what 'er you belting ME for?--Sid broke it!"
   757  
   758  Aunt Polly paused, perplexed, and Tom looked for healing pity. But
   759  when she got her tongue again, she only said:
   760  
   761  "Umf! Well, you didn't get a lick amiss, I reckon. You been into some
   762  other audacious mischief when I wasn't around, like enough."
   763  
   764  Then her conscience reproached her, and she yearned to say something
   765  kind and loving; but she judged that this would be construed into a
   766  confession that she had been in the wrong, and discipline forbade that.
   767  So she kept silence, and went about her affairs with a troubled heart.
   768  Tom sulked in a corner and exalted his woes. He knew that in her heart
   769  his aunt was on her knees to him, and he was morosely gratified by the
   770  consciousness of it. He would hang out no signals, he would take notice
   771  of none. He knew that a yearning glance fell upon him, now and then,
   772  through a film of tears, but he refused recognition of it. He pictured
   773  himself lying sick unto death and his aunt bending over him beseeching
   774  one little forgiving word, but he would turn his face to the wall, and
   775  die with that word unsaid. Ah, how would she feel then? And he pictured
   776  himself brought home from the river, dead, with his curls all wet, and
   777  his sore heart at rest. How she would throw herself upon him, and how
   778  her tears would fall like rain, and her lips pray God to give her back
   779  her boy and she would never, never abuse him any more! But he would lie
   780  there cold and white and make no sign--a poor little sufferer, whose
   781  griefs were at an end. He so worked upon his feelings with the pathos
   782  of these dreams, that he had to keep swallowing, he was so like to
   783  choke; and his eyes swam in a blur of water, which overflowed when he
   784  winked, and ran down and trickled from the end of his nose. And such a
   785  luxury to him was this petting of his sorrows, that he could not bear
   786  to have any worldly cheeriness or any grating delight intrude upon it;
   787  it was too sacred for such contact; and so, presently, when his cousin
   788  Mary danced in, all alive with the joy of seeing home again after an
   789  age-long visit of one week to the country, he got up and moved in
   790  clouds and darkness out at one door as she brought song and sunshine in
   791  at the other.
   792  
   793  He wandered far from the accustomed haunts of boys, and sought
   794  desolate places that were in harmony with his spirit. A log raft in the
   795  river invited him, and he seated himself on its outer edge and
   796  contemplated the dreary vastness of the stream, wishing, the while,
   797  that he could only be drowned, all at once and unconsciously, without
   798  undergoing the uncomfortable routine devised by nature. Then he thought
   799  of his flower. He got it out, rumpled and wilted, and it mightily
   800  increased his dismal felicity. He wondered if she would pity him if she
   801  knew? Would she cry, and wish that she had a right to put her arms
   802  around his neck and comfort him? Or would she turn coldly away like all
   803  the hollow world? This picture brought such an agony of pleasurable
   804  suffering that he worked it over and over again in his mind and set it
   805  up in new and varied lights, till he wore it threadbare. At last he
   806  rose up sighing and departed in the darkness.
   807  
   808  About half-past nine or ten o'clock he came along the deserted street
   809  to where the Adored Unknown lived; he paused a moment; no sound fell
   810  upon his listening ear; a candle was casting a dull glow upon the
   811  curtain of a second-story window. Was the sacred presence there? He
   812  climbed the fence, threaded his stealthy way through the plants, till
   813  he stood under that window; he looked up at it long, and with emotion;
   814  then he laid him down on the ground under it, disposing himself upon
   815  his back, with his hands clasped upon his breast and holding his poor
   816  wilted flower. And thus he would die--out in the cold world, with no
   817  shelter over his homeless head, no friendly hand to wipe the
   818  death-damps from his brow, no loving face to bend pityingly over him
   819  when the great agony came. And thus SHE would see him when she looked
   820  out upon the glad morning, and oh! would she drop one little tear upon
   821  his poor, lifeless form, would she heave one little sigh to see a bright
   822  young life so rudely blighted, so untimely cut down?
   823  
   824  The window went up, a maid-servant's discordant voice profaned the
   825  holy calm, and a deluge of water drenched the prone martyr's remains!
   826  
   827  The strangling hero sprang up with a relieving snort. There was a whiz
   828  as of a missile in the air, mingled with the murmur of a curse, a sound
   829  as of shivering glass followed, and a small, vague form went over the
   830  fence and shot away in the gloom.
   831  
   832  Not long after, as Tom, all undressed for bed, was surveying his
   833  drenched garments by the light of a tallow dip, Sid woke up; but if he
   834  had any dim idea of making any "references to allusions," he thought
   835  better of it and held his peace, for there was danger in Tom's eye.
   836  
   837  Tom turned in without the added vexation of prayers, and Sid made
   838  mental note of the omission.
   839  
   840  
   841  
   842  CHAPTER IV
   843  
   844  THE sun rose upon a tranquil world, and beamed down upon the peaceful
   845  village like a benediction. Breakfast over, Aunt Polly had family
   846  worship: it began with a prayer built from the ground up of solid
   847  courses of Scriptural quotations, welded together with a thin mortar of
   848  originality; and from the summit of this she delivered a grim chapter
   849  of the Mosaic Law, as from Sinai.
   850  
   851  Then Tom girded up his loins, so to speak, and went to work to "get
   852  his verses." Sid had learned his lesson days before. Tom bent all his
   853  energies to the memorizing of five verses, and he chose part of the
   854  Sermon on the Mount, because he could find no verses that were shorter.
   855  At the end of half an hour Tom had a vague general idea of his lesson,
   856  but no more, for his mind was traversing the whole field of human
   857  thought, and his hands were busy with distracting recreations. Mary
   858  took his book to hear him recite, and he tried to find his way through
   859  the fog:
   860  
   861  "Blessed are the--a--a--"
   862  
   863  "Poor"--
   864  
   865  "Yes--poor; blessed are the poor--a--a--"
   866  
   867  "In spirit--"
   868  
   869  "In spirit; blessed are the poor in spirit, for they--they--"
   870  
   871  "THEIRS--"
   872  
   873  "For THEIRS. Blessed are the poor in spirit, for theirs is the kingdom
   874  of heaven. Blessed are they that mourn, for they--they--"
   875  
   876  "Sh--"
   877  
   878  "For they--a--"
   879  
   880  "S, H, A--"
   881  
   882  "For they S, H--Oh, I don't know what it is!"
   883  
   884  "SHALL!"
   885  
   886  "Oh, SHALL! for they shall--for they shall--a--a--shall mourn--a--a--
   887  blessed are they that shall--they that--a--they that shall mourn, for
   888  they shall--a--shall WHAT? Why don't you tell me, Mary?--what do you
   889  want to be so mean for?"
   890  
   891  "Oh, Tom, you poor thick-headed thing, I'm not teasing you. I wouldn't
   892  do that. You must go and learn it again. Don't you be discouraged, Tom,
   893  you'll manage it--and if you do, I'll give you something ever so nice.
   894  There, now, that's a good boy."
   895  
   896  "All right! What is it, Mary, tell me what it is."
   897  
   898  "Never you mind, Tom. You know if I say it's nice, it is nice."
   899  
   900  "You bet you that's so, Mary. All right, I'll tackle it again."
   901  
   902  And he did "tackle it again"--and under the double pressure of
   903  curiosity and prospective gain he did it with such spirit that he
   904  accomplished a shining success. Mary gave him a brand-new "Barlow"
   905  knife worth twelve and a half cents; and the convulsion of delight that
   906  swept his system shook him to his foundations. True, the knife would
   907  not cut anything, but it was a "sure-enough" Barlow, and there was
   908  inconceivable grandeur in that--though where the Western boys ever got
   909  the idea that such a weapon could possibly be counterfeited to its
   910  injury is an imposing mystery and will always remain so, perhaps. Tom
   911  contrived to scarify the cupboard with it, and was arranging to begin
   912  on the bureau, when he was called off to dress for Sunday-school.
   913  
   914  Mary gave him a tin basin of water and a piece of soap, and he went
   915  outside the door and set the basin on a little bench there; then he
   916  dipped the soap in the water and laid it down; turned up his sleeves;
   917  poured out the water on the ground, gently, and then entered the
   918  kitchen and began to wipe his face diligently on the towel behind the
   919  door. But Mary removed the towel and said:
   920  
   921  "Now ain't you ashamed, Tom. You mustn't be so bad. Water won't hurt
   922  you."
   923  
   924  Tom was a trifle disconcerted. The basin was refilled, and this time
   925  he stood over it a little while, gathering resolution; took in a big
   926  breath and began. When he entered the kitchen presently, with both eyes
   927  shut and groping for the towel with his hands, an honorable testimony
   928  of suds and water was dripping from his face. But when he emerged from
   929  the towel, he was not yet satisfactory, for the clean territory stopped
   930  short at his chin and his jaws, like a mask; below and beyond this line
   931  there was a dark expanse of unirrigated soil that spread downward in
   932  front and backward around his neck. Mary took him in hand, and when she
   933  was done with him he was a man and a brother, without distinction of
   934  color, and his saturated hair was neatly brushed, and its short curls
   935  wrought into a dainty and symmetrical general effect. [He privately
   936  smoothed out the curls, with labor and difficulty, and plastered his
   937  hair close down to his head; for he held curls to be effeminate, and
   938  his own filled his life with bitterness.] Then Mary got out a suit of
   939  his clothing that had been used only on Sundays during two years--they
   940  were simply called his "other clothes"--and so by that we know the
   941  size of his wardrobe. The girl "put him to rights" after he had dressed
   942  himself; she buttoned his neat roundabout up to his chin, turned his
   943  vast shirt collar down over his shoulders, brushed him off and crowned
   944  him with his speckled straw hat. He now looked exceedingly improved and
   945  uncomfortable. He was fully as uncomfortable as he looked; for there
   946  was a restraint about whole clothes and cleanliness that galled him. He
   947  hoped that Mary would forget his shoes, but the hope was blighted; she
   948  coated them thoroughly with tallow, as was the custom, and brought them
   949  out. He lost his temper and said he was always being made to do
   950  everything he didn't want to do. But Mary said, persuasively:
   951  
   952  "Please, Tom--that's a good boy."
   953  
   954  So he got into the shoes snarling. Mary was soon ready, and the three
   955  children set out for Sunday-school--a place that Tom hated with his
   956  whole heart; but Sid and Mary were fond of it.
   957  
   958  Sabbath-school hours were from nine to half-past ten; and then church
   959  service. Two of the children always remained for the sermon
   960  voluntarily, and the other always remained too--for stronger reasons.
   961  The church's high-backed, uncushioned pews would seat about three
   962  hundred persons; the edifice was but a small, plain affair, with a sort
   963  of pine board tree-box on top of it for a steeple. At the door Tom
   964  dropped back a step and accosted a Sunday-dressed comrade:
   965  
   966  "Say, Billy, got a yaller ticket?"
   967  
   968  "Yes."
   969  
   970  "What'll you take for her?"
   971  
   972  "What'll you give?"
   973  
   974  "Piece of lickrish and a fish-hook."
   975  
   976  "Less see 'em."
   977  
   978  Tom exhibited. They were satisfactory, and the property changed hands.
   979  Then Tom traded a couple of white alleys for three red tickets, and
   980  some small trifle or other for a couple of blue ones. He waylaid other
   981  boys as they came, and went on buying tickets of various colors ten or
   982  fifteen minutes longer. He entered the church, now, with a swarm of
   983  clean and noisy boys and girls, proceeded to his seat and started a
   984  quarrel with the first boy that came handy. The teacher, a grave,
   985  elderly man, interfered; then turned his back a moment and Tom pulled a
   986  boy's hair in the next bench, and was absorbed in his book when the boy
   987  turned around; stuck a pin in another boy, presently, in order to hear
   988  him say "Ouch!" and got a new reprimand from his teacher. Tom's whole
   989  class were of a pattern--restless, noisy, and troublesome. When they
   990  came to recite their lessons, not one of them knew his verses
   991  perfectly, but had to be prompted all along. However, they worried
   992  through, and each got his reward--in small blue tickets, each with a
   993  passage of Scripture on it; each blue ticket was pay for two verses of
   994  the recitation. Ten blue tickets equalled a red one, and could be
   995  exchanged for it; ten red tickets equalled a yellow one; for ten yellow
   996  tickets the superintendent gave a very plainly bound Bible (worth forty
   997  cents in those easy times) to the pupil. How many of my readers would
   998  have the industry and application to memorize two thousand verses, even
   999  for a Dore Bible? And yet Mary had acquired two Bibles in this way--it
  1000  was the patient work of two years--and a boy of German parentage had
  1001  won four or five. He once recited three thousand verses without
  1002  stopping; but the strain upon his mental faculties was too great, and
  1003  he was little better than an idiot from that day forth--a grievous
  1004  misfortune for the school, for on great occasions, before company, the
  1005  superintendent (as Tom expressed it) had always made this boy come out
  1006  and "spread himself." Only the older pupils managed to keep their
  1007  tickets and stick to their tedious work long enough to get a Bible, and
  1008  so the delivery of one of these prizes was a rare and noteworthy
  1009  circumstance; the successful pupil was so great and conspicuous for
  1010  that day that on the spot every scholar's heart was fired with a fresh
  1011  ambition that often lasted a couple of weeks. It is possible that Tom's
  1012  mental stomach had never really hungered for one of those prizes, but
  1013  unquestionably his entire being had for many a day longed for the glory
  1014  and the eclat that came with it.
  1015  
  1016  In due course the superintendent stood up in front of the pulpit, with
  1017  a closed hymn-book in his hand and his forefinger inserted between its
  1018  leaves, and commanded attention. When a Sunday-school superintendent
  1019  makes his customary little speech, a hymn-book in the hand is as
  1020  necessary as is the inevitable sheet of music in the hand of a singer
  1021  who stands forward on the platform and sings a solo at a concert
  1022  --though why, is a mystery: for neither the hymn-book nor the sheet of
  1023  music is ever referred to by the sufferer. This superintendent was a
  1024  slim creature of thirty-five, with a sandy goatee and short sandy hair;
  1025  he wore a stiff standing-collar whose upper edge almost reached his
  1026  ears and whose sharp points curved forward abreast the corners of his
  1027  mouth--a fence that compelled a straight lookout ahead, and a turning
  1028  of the whole body when a side view was required; his chin was propped
  1029  on a spreading cravat which was as broad and as long as a bank-note,
  1030  and had fringed ends; his boot toes were turned sharply up, in the
  1031  fashion of the day, like sleigh-runners--an effect patiently and
  1032  laboriously produced by the young men by sitting with their toes
  1033  pressed against a wall for hours together. Mr. Walters was very earnest
  1034  of mien, and very sincere and honest at heart; and he held sacred
  1035  things and places in such reverence, and so separated them from worldly
  1036  matters, that unconsciously to himself his Sunday-school voice had
  1037  acquired a peculiar intonation which was wholly absent on week-days. He
  1038  began after this fashion:
  1039  
  1040  "Now, children, I want you all to sit up just as straight and pretty
  1041  as you can and give me all your attention for a minute or two. There
  1042  --that is it. That is the way good little boys and girls should do. I see
  1043  one little girl who is looking out of the window--I am afraid she
  1044  thinks I am out there somewhere--perhaps up in one of the trees making
  1045  a speech to the little birds. [Applausive titter.] I want to tell you
  1046  how good it makes me feel to see so many bright, clean little faces
  1047  assembled in a place like this, learning to do right and be good." And
  1048  so forth and so on. It is not necessary to set down the rest of the
  1049  oration. It was of a pattern which does not vary, and so it is familiar
  1050  to us all.
  1051  
  1052  The latter third of the speech was marred by the resumption of fights
  1053  and other recreations among certain of the bad boys, and by fidgetings
  1054  and whisperings that extended far and wide, washing even to the bases
  1055  of isolated and incorruptible rocks like Sid and Mary. But now every
  1056  sound ceased suddenly, with the subsidence of Mr. Walters' voice, and
  1057  the conclusion of the speech was received with a burst of silent
  1058  gratitude.
  1059  
  1060  A good part of the whispering had been occasioned by an event which
  1061  was more or less rare--the entrance of visitors: lawyer Thatcher,
  1062  accompanied by a very feeble and aged man; a fine, portly, middle-aged
  1063  gentleman with iron-gray hair; and a dignified lady who was doubtless
  1064  the latter's wife. The lady was leading a child. Tom had been restless
  1065  and full of chafings and repinings; conscience-smitten, too--he could
  1066  not meet Amy Lawrence's eye, he could not brook her loving gaze. But
  1067  when he saw this small new-comer his soul was all ablaze with bliss in
  1068  a moment. The next moment he was "showing off" with all his might
  1069  --cuffing boys, pulling hair, making faces--in a word, using every art
  1070  that seemed likely to fascinate a girl and win her applause. His
  1071  exaltation had but one alloy--the memory of his humiliation in this
  1072  angel's garden--and that record in sand was fast washing out, under
  1073  the waves of happiness that were sweeping over it now.
  1074  
  1075  The visitors were given the highest seat of honor, and as soon as Mr.
  1076  Walters' speech was finished, he introduced them to the school. The
  1077  middle-aged man turned out to be a prodigious personage--no less a one
  1078  than the county judge--altogether the most august creation these
  1079  children had ever looked upon--and they wondered what kind of material
  1080  he was made of--and they half wanted to hear him roar, and were half
  1081  afraid he might, too. He was from Constantinople, twelve miles away--so
  1082  he had travelled, and seen the world--these very eyes had looked upon
  1083  the county court-house--which was said to have a tin roof. The awe
  1084  which these reflections inspired was attested by the impressive silence
  1085  and the ranks of staring eyes. This was the great Judge Thatcher,
  1086  brother of their own lawyer. Jeff Thatcher immediately went forward, to
  1087  be familiar with the great man and be envied by the school. It would
  1088  have been music to his soul to hear the whisperings:
  1089  
  1090  "Look at him, Jim! He's a going up there. Say--look! he's a going to
  1091  shake hands with him--he IS shaking hands with him! By jings, don't you
  1092  wish you was Jeff?"
  1093  
  1094  Mr. Walters fell to "showing off," with all sorts of official
  1095  bustlings and activities, giving orders, delivering judgments,
  1096  discharging directions here, there, everywhere that he could find a
  1097  target. The librarian "showed off"--running hither and thither with his
  1098  arms full of books and making a deal of the splutter and fuss that
  1099  insect authority delights in. The young lady teachers "showed off"
  1100  --bending sweetly over pupils that were lately being boxed, lifting
  1101  pretty warning fingers at bad little boys and patting good ones
  1102  lovingly. The young gentlemen teachers "showed off" with small
  1103  scoldings and other little displays of authority and fine attention to
  1104  discipline--and most of the teachers, of both sexes, found business up
  1105  at the library, by the pulpit; and it was business that frequently had
  1106  to be done over again two or three times (with much seeming vexation).
  1107  The little girls "showed off" in various ways, and the little boys
  1108  "showed off" with such diligence that the air was thick with paper wads
  1109  and the murmur of scufflings. And above it all the great man sat and
  1110  beamed a majestic judicial smile upon all the house, and warmed himself
  1111  in the sun of his own grandeur--for he was "showing off," too.
  1112  
  1113  There was only one thing wanting to make Mr. Walters' ecstasy
  1114  complete, and that was a chance to deliver a Bible-prize and exhibit a
  1115  prodigy. Several pupils had a few yellow tickets, but none had enough
  1116  --he had been around among the star pupils inquiring. He would have given
  1117  worlds, now, to have that German lad back again with a sound mind.
  1118  
  1119  And now at this moment, when hope was dead, Tom Sawyer came forward
  1120  with nine yellow tickets, nine red tickets, and ten blue ones, and
  1121  demanded a Bible. This was a thunderbolt out of a clear sky. Walters
  1122  was not expecting an application from this source for the next ten
  1123  years. But there was no getting around it--here were the certified
  1124  checks, and they were good for their face. Tom was therefore elevated
  1125  to a place with the Judge and the other elect, and the great news was
  1126  announced from headquarters. It was the most stunning surprise of the
  1127  decade, and so profound was the sensation that it lifted the new hero
  1128  up to the judicial one's altitude, and the school had two marvels to
  1129  gaze upon in place of one. The boys were all eaten up with envy--but
  1130  those that suffered the bitterest pangs were those who perceived too
  1131  late that they themselves had contributed to this hated splendor by
  1132  trading tickets to Tom for the wealth he had amassed in selling
  1133  whitewashing privileges. These despised themselves, as being the dupes
  1134  of a wily fraud, a guileful snake in the grass.
  1135  
  1136  The prize was delivered to Tom with as much effusion as the
  1137  superintendent could pump up under the circumstances; but it lacked
  1138  somewhat of the true gush, for the poor fellow's instinct taught him
  1139  that there was a mystery here that could not well bear the light,
  1140  perhaps; it was simply preposterous that this boy had warehoused two
  1141  thousand sheaves of Scriptural wisdom on his premises--a dozen would
  1142  strain his capacity, without a doubt.
  1143  
  1144  Amy Lawrence was proud and glad, and she tried to make Tom see it in
  1145  her face--but he wouldn't look. She wondered; then she was just a grain
  1146  troubled; next a dim suspicion came and went--came again; she watched;
  1147  a furtive glance told her worlds--and then her heart broke, and she was
  1148  jealous, and angry, and the tears came and she hated everybody. Tom
  1149  most of all (she thought).
  1150  
  1151  Tom was introduced to the Judge; but his tongue was tied, his breath
  1152  would hardly come, his heart quaked--partly because of the awful
  1153  greatness of the man, but mainly because he was her parent. He would
  1154  have liked to fall down and worship him, if it were in the dark. The
  1155  Judge put his hand on Tom's head and called him a fine little man, and
  1156  asked him what his name was. The boy stammered, gasped, and got it out:
  1157  
  1158  "Tom."
  1159  
  1160  "Oh, no, not Tom--it is--"
  1161  
  1162  "Thomas."
  1163  
  1164  "Ah, that's it. I thought there was more to it, maybe. That's very
  1165  well. But you've another one I daresay, and you'll tell it to me, won't
  1166  you?"
  1167  
  1168  "Tell the gentleman your other name, Thomas," said Walters, "and say
  1169  sir. You mustn't forget your manners."
  1170  
  1171  "Thomas Sawyer--sir."
  1172  
  1173  "That's it! That's a good boy. Fine boy. Fine, manly little fellow.
  1174  Two thousand verses is a great many--very, very great many. And you
  1175  never can be sorry for the trouble you took to learn them; for
  1176  knowledge is worth more than anything there is in the world; it's what
  1177  makes great men and good men; you'll be a great man and a good man
  1178  yourself, some day, Thomas, and then you'll look back and say, It's all
  1179  owing to the precious Sunday-school privileges of my boyhood--it's all
  1180  owing to my dear teachers that taught me to learn--it's all owing to
  1181  the good superintendent, who encouraged me, and watched over me, and
  1182  gave me a beautiful Bible--a splendid elegant Bible--to keep and have
  1183  it all for my own, always--it's all owing to right bringing up! That is
  1184  what you will say, Thomas--and you wouldn't take any money for those
  1185  two thousand verses--no indeed you wouldn't. And now you wouldn't mind
  1186  telling me and this lady some of the things you've learned--no, I know
  1187  you wouldn't--for we are proud of little boys that learn. Now, no
  1188  doubt you know the names of all the twelve disciples. Won't you tell us
  1189  the names of the first two that were appointed?"
  1190  
  1191  Tom was tugging at a button-hole and looking sheepish. He blushed,
  1192  now, and his eyes fell. Mr. Walters' heart sank within him. He said to
  1193  himself, it is not possible that the boy can answer the simplest
  1194  question--why DID the Judge ask him? Yet he felt obliged to speak up
  1195  and say:
  1196  
  1197  "Answer the gentleman, Thomas--don't be afraid."
  1198  
  1199  Tom still hung fire.
  1200  
  1201  "Now I know you'll tell me," said the lady. "The names of the first
  1202  two disciples were--"
  1203  
  1204  "DAVID AND GOLIAH!"
  1205  
  1206  Let us draw the curtain of charity over the rest of the scene.
  1207  
  1208  
  1209  
  1210  CHAPTER V
  1211  
  1212  ABOUT half-past ten the cracked bell of the small church began to
  1213  ring, and presently the people began to gather for the morning sermon.
  1214  The Sunday-school children distributed themselves about the house and
  1215  occupied pews with their parents, so as to be under supervision. Aunt
  1216  Polly came, and Tom and Sid and Mary sat with her--Tom being placed
  1217  next the aisle, in order that he might be as far away from the open
  1218  window and the seductive outside summer scenes as possible. The crowd
  1219  filed up the aisles: the aged and needy postmaster, who had seen better
  1220  days; the mayor and his wife--for they had a mayor there, among other
  1221  unnecessaries; the justice of the peace; the widow Douglass, fair,
  1222  smart, and forty, a generous, good-hearted soul and well-to-do, her
  1223  hill mansion the only palace in the town, and the most hospitable and
  1224  much the most lavish in the matter of festivities that St. Petersburg
  1225  could boast; the bent and venerable Major and Mrs. Ward; lawyer
  1226  Riverson, the new notable from a distance; next the belle of the
  1227  village, followed by a troop of lawn-clad and ribbon-decked young
  1228  heart-breakers; then all the young clerks in town in a body--for they
  1229  had stood in the vestibule sucking their cane-heads, a circling wall of
  1230  oiled and simpering admirers, till the last girl had run their gantlet;
  1231  and last of all came the Model Boy, Willie Mufferson, taking as heedful
  1232  care of his mother as if she were cut glass. He always brought his
  1233  mother to church, and was the pride of all the matrons. The boys all
  1234  hated him, he was so good. And besides, he had been "thrown up to them"
  1235  so much. His white handkerchief was hanging out of his pocket behind, as
  1236  usual on Sundays--accidentally. Tom had no handkerchief, and he looked
  1237  upon boys who had as snobs.
  1238  
  1239  The congregation being fully assembled, now, the bell rang once more,
  1240  to warn laggards and stragglers, and then a solemn hush fell upon the
  1241  church which was only broken by the tittering and whispering of the
  1242  choir in the gallery. The choir always tittered and whispered all
  1243  through service. There was once a church choir that was not ill-bred,
  1244  but I have forgotten where it was, now. It was a great many years ago,
  1245  and I can scarcely remember anything about it, but I think it was in
  1246  some foreign country.
  1247  
  1248  The minister gave out the hymn, and read it through with a relish, in
  1249  a peculiar style which was much admired in that part of the country.
  1250  His voice began on a medium key and climbed steadily up till it reached
  1251  a certain point, where it bore with strong emphasis upon the topmost
  1252  word and then plunged down as if from a spring-board:
  1253  
  1254    Shall I be car-ri-ed toe the skies, on flow'ry BEDS of ease,
  1255  
  1256    Whilst others fight to win the prize, and sail thro' BLOODY seas?
  1257  
  1258  He was regarded as a wonderful reader. At church "sociables" he was
  1259  always called upon to read poetry; and when he was through, the ladies
  1260  would lift up their hands and let them fall helplessly in their laps,
  1261  and "wall" their eyes, and shake their heads, as much as to say, "Words
  1262  cannot express it; it is too beautiful, TOO beautiful for this mortal
  1263  earth."
  1264  
  1265  After the hymn had been sung, the Rev. Mr. Sprague turned himself into
  1266  a bulletin-board, and read off "notices" of meetings and societies and
  1267  things till it seemed that the list would stretch out to the crack of
  1268  doom--a queer custom which is still kept up in America, even in cities,
  1269  away here in this age of abundant newspapers. Often, the less there is
  1270  to justify a traditional custom, the harder it is to get rid of it.
  1271  
  1272  And now the minister prayed. A good, generous prayer it was, and went
  1273  into details: it pleaded for the church, and the little children of the
  1274  church; for the other churches of the village; for the village itself;
  1275  for the county; for the State; for the State officers; for the United
  1276  States; for the churches of the United States; for Congress; for the
  1277  President; for the officers of the Government; for poor sailors, tossed
  1278  by stormy seas; for the oppressed millions groaning under the heel of
  1279  European monarchies and Oriental despotisms; for such as have the light
  1280  and the good tidings, and yet have not eyes to see nor ears to hear
  1281  withal; for the heathen in the far islands of the sea; and closed with
  1282  a supplication that the words he was about to speak might find grace
  1283  and favor, and be as seed sown in fertile ground, yielding in time a
  1284  grateful harvest of good. Amen.
  1285  
  1286  There was a rustling of dresses, and the standing congregation sat
  1287  down. The boy whose history this book relates did not enjoy the prayer,
  1288  he only endured it--if he even did that much. He was restive all
  1289  through it; he kept tally of the details of the prayer, unconsciously
  1290  --for he was not listening, but he knew the ground of old, and the
  1291  clergyman's regular route over it--and when a little trifle of new
  1292  matter was interlarded, his ear detected it and his whole nature
  1293  resented it; he considered additions unfair, and scoundrelly. In the
  1294  midst of the prayer a fly had lit on the back of the pew in front of
  1295  him and tortured his spirit by calmly rubbing its hands together,
  1296  embracing its head with its arms, and polishing it so vigorously that
  1297  it seemed to almost part company with the body, and the slender thread
  1298  of a neck was exposed to view; scraping its wings with its hind legs
  1299  and smoothing them to its body as if they had been coat-tails; going
  1300  through its whole toilet as tranquilly as if it knew it was perfectly
  1301  safe. As indeed it was; for as sorely as Tom's hands itched to grab for
  1302  it they did not dare--he believed his soul would be instantly destroyed
  1303  if he did such a thing while the prayer was going on. But with the
  1304  closing sentence his hand began to curve and steal forward; and the
  1305  instant the "Amen" was out the fly was a prisoner of war. His aunt
  1306  detected the act and made him let it go.
  1307  
  1308  The minister gave out his text and droned along monotonously through
  1309  an argument that was so prosy that many a head by and by began to nod
  1310  --and yet it was an argument that dealt in limitless fire and brimstone
  1311  and thinned the predestined elect down to a company so small as to be
  1312  hardly worth the saving. Tom counted the pages of the sermon; after
  1313  church he always knew how many pages there had been, but he seldom knew
  1314  anything else about the discourse. However, this time he was really
  1315  interested for a little while. The minister made a grand and moving
  1316  picture of the assembling together of the world's hosts at the
  1317  millennium when the lion and the lamb should lie down together and a
  1318  little child should lead them. But the pathos, the lesson, the moral of
  1319  the great spectacle were lost upon the boy; he only thought of the
  1320  conspicuousness of the principal character before the on-looking
  1321  nations; his face lit with the thought, and he said to himself that he
  1322  wished he could be that child, if it was a tame lion.
  1323  
  1324  Now he lapsed into suffering again, as the dry argument was resumed.
  1325  Presently he bethought him of a treasure he had and got it out. It was
  1326  a large black beetle with formidable jaws--a "pinchbug," he called it.
  1327  It was in a percussion-cap box. The first thing the beetle did was to
  1328  take him by the finger. A natural fillip followed, the beetle went
  1329  floundering into the aisle and lit on its back, and the hurt finger
  1330  went into the boy's mouth. The beetle lay there working its helpless
  1331  legs, unable to turn over. Tom eyed it, and longed for it; but it was
  1332  safe out of his reach. Other people uninterested in the sermon found
  1333  relief in the beetle, and they eyed it too. Presently a vagrant poodle
  1334  dog came idling along, sad at heart, lazy with the summer softness and
  1335  the quiet, weary of captivity, sighing for change. He spied the beetle;
  1336  the drooping tail lifted and wagged. He surveyed the prize; walked
  1337  around it; smelt at it from a safe distance; walked around it again;
  1338  grew bolder, and took a closer smell; then lifted his lip and made a
  1339  gingerly snatch at it, just missing it; made another, and another;
  1340  began to enjoy the diversion; subsided to his stomach with the beetle
  1341  between his paws, and continued his experiments; grew weary at last,
  1342  and then indifferent and absent-minded. His head nodded, and little by
  1343  little his chin descended and touched the enemy, who seized it. There
  1344  was a sharp yelp, a flirt of the poodle's head, and the beetle fell a
  1345  couple of yards away, and lit on its back once more. The neighboring
  1346  spectators shook with a gentle inward joy, several faces went behind
  1347  fans and handkerchiefs, and Tom was entirely happy. The dog looked
  1348  foolish, and probably felt so; but there was resentment in his heart,
  1349  too, and a craving for revenge. So he went to the beetle and began a
  1350  wary attack on it again; jumping at it from every point of a circle,
  1351  lighting with his fore-paws within an inch of the creature, making even
  1352  closer snatches at it with his teeth, and jerking his head till his
  1353  ears flapped again. But he grew tired once more, after a while; tried
  1354  to amuse himself with a fly but found no relief; followed an ant
  1355  around, with his nose close to the floor, and quickly wearied of that;
  1356  yawned, sighed, forgot the beetle entirely, and sat down on it. Then
  1357  there was a wild yelp of agony and the poodle went sailing up the
  1358  aisle; the yelps continued, and so did the dog; he crossed the house in
  1359  front of the altar; he flew down the other aisle; he crossed before the
  1360  doors; he clamored up the home-stretch; his anguish grew with his
  1361  progress, till presently he was but a woolly comet moving in its orbit
  1362  with the gleam and the speed of light. At last the frantic sufferer
  1363  sheered from its course, and sprang into its master's lap; he flung it
  1364  out of the window, and the voice of distress quickly thinned away and
  1365  died in the distance.
  1366  
  1367  By this time the whole church was red-faced and suffocating with
  1368  suppressed laughter, and the sermon had come to a dead standstill. The
  1369  discourse was resumed presently, but it went lame and halting, all
  1370  possibility of impressiveness being at an end; for even the gravest
  1371  sentiments were constantly being received with a smothered burst of
  1372  unholy mirth, under cover of some remote pew-back, as if the poor
  1373  parson had said a rarely facetious thing. It was a genuine relief to
  1374  the whole congregation when the ordeal was over and the benediction
  1375  pronounced.
  1376  
  1377  Tom Sawyer went home quite cheerful, thinking to himself that there
  1378  was some satisfaction about divine service when there was a bit of
  1379  variety in it. He had but one marring thought; he was willing that the
  1380  dog should play with his pinchbug, but he did not think it was upright
  1381  in him to carry it off.
  1382  
  1383  
  1384  
  1385  CHAPTER VI
  1386  
  1387  MONDAY morning found Tom Sawyer miserable. Monday morning always found
  1388  him so--because it began another week's slow suffering in school. He
  1389  generally began that day with wishing he had had no intervening
  1390  holiday, it made the going into captivity and fetters again so much
  1391  more odious.
  1392  
  1393  Tom lay thinking. Presently it occurred to him that he wished he was
  1394  sick; then he could stay home from school. Here was a vague
  1395  possibility. He canvassed his system. No ailment was found, and he
  1396  investigated again. This time he thought he could detect colicky
  1397  symptoms, and he began to encourage them with considerable hope. But
  1398  they soon grew feeble, and presently died wholly away. He reflected
  1399  further. Suddenly he discovered something. One of his upper front teeth
  1400  was loose. This was lucky; he was about to begin to groan, as a
  1401  "starter," as he called it, when it occurred to him that if he came
  1402  into court with that argument, his aunt would pull it out, and that
  1403  would hurt. So he thought he would hold the tooth in reserve for the
  1404  present, and seek further. Nothing offered for some little time, and
  1405  then he remembered hearing the doctor tell about a certain thing that
  1406  laid up a patient for two or three weeks and threatened to make him
  1407  lose a finger. So the boy eagerly drew his sore toe from under the
  1408  sheet and held it up for inspection. But now he did not know the
  1409  necessary symptoms. However, it seemed well worth while to chance it,
  1410  so he fell to groaning with considerable spirit.
  1411  
  1412  But Sid slept on unconscious.
  1413  
  1414  Tom groaned louder, and fancied that he began to feel pain in the toe.
  1415  
  1416  No result from Sid.
  1417  
  1418  Tom was panting with his exertions by this time. He took a rest and
  1419  then swelled himself up and fetched a succession of admirable groans.
  1420  
  1421  Sid snored on.
  1422  
  1423  Tom was aggravated. He said, "Sid, Sid!" and shook him. This course
  1424  worked well, and Tom began to groan again. Sid yawned, stretched, then
  1425  brought himself up on his elbow with a snort, and began to stare at
  1426  Tom. Tom went on groaning. Sid said:
  1427  
  1428  "Tom! Say, Tom!" [No response.] "Here, Tom! TOM! What is the matter,
  1429  Tom?" And he shook him and looked in his face anxiously.
  1430  
  1431  Tom moaned out:
  1432  
  1433  "Oh, don't, Sid. Don't joggle me."
  1434  
  1435  "Why, what's the matter, Tom? I must call auntie."
  1436  
  1437  "No--never mind. It'll be over by and by, maybe. Don't call anybody."
  1438  
  1439  "But I must! DON'T groan so, Tom, it's awful. How long you been this
  1440  way?"
  1441  
  1442  "Hours. Ouch! Oh, don't stir so, Sid, you'll kill me."
  1443  
  1444  "Tom, why didn't you wake me sooner? Oh, Tom, DON'T! It makes my
  1445  flesh crawl to hear you. Tom, what is the matter?"
  1446  
  1447  "I forgive you everything, Sid. [Groan.] Everything you've ever done
  1448  to me. When I'm gone--"
  1449  
  1450  "Oh, Tom, you ain't dying, are you? Don't, Tom--oh, don't. Maybe--"
  1451  
  1452  "I forgive everybody, Sid. [Groan.] Tell 'em so, Sid. And Sid, you
  1453  give my window-sash and my cat with one eye to that new girl that's
  1454  come to town, and tell her--"
  1455  
  1456  But Sid had snatched his clothes and gone. Tom was suffering in
  1457  reality, now, so handsomely was his imagination working, and so his
  1458  groans had gathered quite a genuine tone.
  1459  
  1460  Sid flew down-stairs and said:
  1461  
  1462  "Oh, Aunt Polly, come! Tom's dying!"
  1463  
  1464  "Dying!"
  1465  
  1466  "Yes'm. Don't wait--come quick!"
  1467  
  1468  "Rubbage! I don't believe it!"
  1469  
  1470  But she fled up-stairs, nevertheless, with Sid and Mary at her heels.
  1471  And her face grew white, too, and her lip trembled. When she reached
  1472  the bedside she gasped out:
  1473  
  1474  "You, Tom! Tom, what's the matter with you?"
  1475  
  1476  "Oh, auntie, I'm--"
  1477  
  1478  "What's the matter with you--what is the matter with you, child?"
  1479  
  1480  "Oh, auntie, my sore toe's mortified!"
  1481  
  1482  The old lady sank down into a chair and laughed a little, then cried a
  1483  little, then did both together. This restored her and she said:
  1484  
  1485  "Tom, what a turn you did give me. Now you shut up that nonsense and
  1486  climb out of this."
  1487  
  1488  The groans ceased and the pain vanished from the toe. The boy felt a
  1489  little foolish, and he said:
  1490  
  1491  "Aunt Polly, it SEEMED mortified, and it hurt so I never minded my
  1492  tooth at all."
  1493  
  1494  "Your tooth, indeed! What's the matter with your tooth?"
  1495  
  1496  "One of them's loose, and it aches perfectly awful."
  1497  
  1498  "There, there, now, don't begin that groaning again. Open your mouth.
  1499  Well--your tooth IS loose, but you're not going to die about that.
  1500  Mary, get me a silk thread, and a chunk of fire out of the kitchen."
  1501  
  1502  Tom said:
  1503  
  1504  "Oh, please, auntie, don't pull it out. It don't hurt any more. I wish
  1505  I may never stir if it does. Please don't, auntie. I don't want to stay
  1506  home from school."
  1507  
  1508  "Oh, you don't, don't you? So all this row was because you thought
  1509  you'd get to stay home from school and go a-fishing? Tom, Tom, I love
  1510  you so, and you seem to try every way you can to break my old heart
  1511  with your outrageousness." By this time the dental instruments were
  1512  ready. The old lady made one end of the silk thread fast to Tom's tooth
  1513  with a loop and tied the other to the bedpost. Then she seized the
  1514  chunk of fire and suddenly thrust it almost into the boy's face. The
  1515  tooth hung dangling by the bedpost, now.
  1516  
  1517  But all trials bring their compensations. As Tom wended to school
  1518  after breakfast, he was the envy of every boy he met because the gap in
  1519  his upper row of teeth enabled him to expectorate in a new and
  1520  admirable way. He gathered quite a following of lads interested in the
  1521  exhibition; and one that had cut his finger and had been a centre of
  1522  fascination and homage up to this time, now found himself suddenly
  1523  without an adherent, and shorn of his glory. His heart was heavy, and
  1524  he said with a disdain which he did not feel that it wasn't anything to
  1525  spit like Tom Sawyer; but another boy said, "Sour grapes!" and he
  1526  wandered away a dismantled hero.
  1527  
  1528  Shortly Tom came upon the juvenile pariah of the village, Huckleberry
  1529  Finn, son of the town drunkard. Huckleberry was cordially hated and
  1530  dreaded by all the mothers of the town, because he was idle and lawless
  1531  and vulgar and bad--and because all their children admired him so, and
  1532  delighted in his forbidden society, and wished they dared to be like
  1533  him. Tom was like the rest of the respectable boys, in that he envied
  1534  Huckleberry his gaudy outcast condition, and was under strict orders
  1535  not to play with him. So he played with him every time he got a chance.
  1536  Huckleberry was always dressed in the cast-off clothes of full-grown
  1537  men, and they were in perennial bloom and fluttering with rags. His hat
  1538  was a vast ruin with a wide crescent lopped out of its brim; his coat,
  1539  when he wore one, hung nearly to his heels and had the rearward buttons
  1540  far down the back; but one suspender supported his trousers; the seat
  1541  of the trousers bagged low and contained nothing, the fringed legs
  1542  dragged in the dirt when not rolled up.
  1543  
  1544  Huckleberry came and went, at his own free will. He slept on doorsteps
  1545  in fine weather and in empty hogsheads in wet; he did not have to go to
  1546  school or to church, or call any being master or obey anybody; he could
  1547  go fishing or swimming when and where he chose, and stay as long as it
  1548  suited him; nobody forbade him to fight; he could sit up as late as he
  1549  pleased; he was always the first boy that went barefoot in the spring
  1550  and the last to resume leather in the fall; he never had to wash, nor
  1551  put on clean clothes; he could swear wonderfully. In a word, everything
  1552  that goes to make life precious that boy had. So thought every
  1553  harassed, hampered, respectable boy in St. Petersburg.
  1554  
  1555  Tom hailed the romantic outcast:
  1556  
  1557  "Hello, Huckleberry!"
  1558  
  1559  "Hello yourself, and see how you like it."
  1560  
  1561  "What's that you got?"
  1562  
  1563  "Dead cat."
  1564  
  1565  "Lemme see him, Huck. My, he's pretty stiff. Where'd you get him?"
  1566  
  1567  "Bought him off'n a boy."
  1568  
  1569  "What did you give?"
  1570  
  1571  "I give a blue ticket and a bladder that I got at the slaughter-house."
  1572  
  1573  "Where'd you get the blue ticket?"
  1574  
  1575  "Bought it off'n Ben Rogers two weeks ago for a hoop-stick."
  1576  
  1577  "Say--what is dead cats good for, Huck?"
  1578  
  1579  "Good for? Cure warts with."
  1580  
  1581  "No! Is that so? I know something that's better."
  1582  
  1583  "I bet you don't. What is it?"
  1584  
  1585  "Why, spunk-water."
  1586  
  1587  "Spunk-water! I wouldn't give a dern for spunk-water."
  1588  
  1589  "You wouldn't, wouldn't you? D'you ever try it?"
  1590  
  1591  "No, I hain't. But Bob Tanner did."
  1592  
  1593  "Who told you so!"
  1594  
  1595  "Why, he told Jeff Thatcher, and Jeff told Johnny Baker, and Johnny
  1596  told Jim Hollis, and Jim told Ben Rogers, and Ben told a nigger, and
  1597  the nigger told me. There now!"
  1598  
  1599  "Well, what of it? They'll all lie. Leastways all but the nigger. I
  1600  don't know HIM. But I never see a nigger that WOULDN'T lie. Shucks! Now
  1601  you tell me how Bob Tanner done it, Huck."
  1602  
  1603  "Why, he took and dipped his hand in a rotten stump where the
  1604  rain-water was."
  1605  
  1606  "In the daytime?"
  1607  
  1608  "Certainly."
  1609  
  1610  "With his face to the stump?"
  1611  
  1612  "Yes. Least I reckon so."
  1613  
  1614  "Did he say anything?"
  1615  
  1616  "I don't reckon he did. I don't know."
  1617  
  1618  "Aha! Talk about trying to cure warts with spunk-water such a blame
  1619  fool way as that! Why, that ain't a-going to do any good. You got to go
  1620  all by yourself, to the middle of the woods, where you know there's a
  1621  spunk-water stump, and just as it's midnight you back up against the
  1622  stump and jam your hand in and say:
  1623  
  1624    'Barley-corn, barley-corn, injun-meal shorts,
  1625     Spunk-water, spunk-water, swaller these warts,'
  1626  
  1627  and then walk away quick, eleven steps, with your eyes shut, and then
  1628  turn around three times and walk home without speaking to anybody.
  1629  Because if you speak the charm's busted."
  1630  
  1631  "Well, that sounds like a good way; but that ain't the way Bob Tanner
  1632  done."
  1633  
  1634  "No, sir, you can bet he didn't, becuz he's the wartiest boy in this
  1635  town; and he wouldn't have a wart on him if he'd knowed how to work
  1636  spunk-water. I've took off thousands of warts off of my hands that way,
  1637  Huck. I play with frogs so much that I've always got considerable many
  1638  warts. Sometimes I take 'em off with a bean."
  1639  
  1640  "Yes, bean's good. I've done that."
  1641  
  1642  "Have you? What's your way?"
  1643  
  1644  "You take and split the bean, and cut the wart so as to get some
  1645  blood, and then you put the blood on one piece of the bean and take and
  1646  dig a hole and bury it 'bout midnight at the crossroads in the dark of
  1647  the moon, and then you burn up the rest of the bean. You see that piece
  1648  that's got the blood on it will keep drawing and drawing, trying to
  1649  fetch the other piece to it, and so that helps the blood to draw the
  1650  wart, and pretty soon off she comes."
  1651  
  1652  "Yes, that's it, Huck--that's it; though when you're burying it if you
  1653  say 'Down bean; off wart; come no more to bother me!' it's better.
  1654  That's the way Joe Harper does, and he's been nearly to Coonville and
  1655  most everywheres. But say--how do you cure 'em with dead cats?"
  1656  
  1657  "Why, you take your cat and go and get in the graveyard 'long about
  1658  midnight when somebody that was wicked has been buried; and when it's
  1659  midnight a devil will come, or maybe two or three, but you can't see
  1660  'em, you can only hear something like the wind, or maybe hear 'em talk;
  1661  and when they're taking that feller away, you heave your cat after 'em
  1662  and say, 'Devil follow corpse, cat follow devil, warts follow cat, I'm
  1663  done with ye!' That'll fetch ANY wart."
  1664  
  1665  "Sounds right. D'you ever try it, Huck?"
  1666  
  1667  "No, but old Mother Hopkins told me."
  1668  
  1669  "Well, I reckon it's so, then. Becuz they say she's a witch."
  1670  
  1671  "Say! Why, Tom, I KNOW she is. She witched pap. Pap says so his own
  1672  self. He come along one day, and he see she was a-witching him, so he
  1673  took up a rock, and if she hadn't dodged, he'd a got her. Well, that
  1674  very night he rolled off'n a shed wher' he was a layin drunk, and broke
  1675  his arm."
  1676  
  1677  "Why, that's awful. How did he know she was a-witching him?"
  1678  
  1679  "Lord, pap can tell, easy. Pap says when they keep looking at you
  1680  right stiddy, they're a-witching you. Specially if they mumble. Becuz
  1681  when they mumble they're saying the Lord's Prayer backards."
  1682  
  1683  "Say, Hucky, when you going to try the cat?"
  1684  
  1685  "To-night. I reckon they'll come after old Hoss Williams to-night."
  1686  
  1687  "But they buried him Saturday. Didn't they get him Saturday night?"
  1688  
  1689  "Why, how you talk! How could their charms work till midnight?--and
  1690  THEN it's Sunday. Devils don't slosh around much of a Sunday, I don't
  1691  reckon."
  1692  
  1693  "I never thought of that. That's so. Lemme go with you?"
  1694  
  1695  "Of course--if you ain't afeard."
  1696  
  1697  "Afeard! 'Tain't likely. Will you meow?"
  1698  
  1699  "Yes--and you meow back, if you get a chance. Last time, you kep' me
  1700  a-meowing around till old Hays went to throwing rocks at me and says
  1701  'Dern that cat!' and so I hove a brick through his window--but don't
  1702  you tell."
  1703  
  1704  "I won't. I couldn't meow that night, becuz auntie was watching me,
  1705  but I'll meow this time. Say--what's that?"
  1706  
  1707  "Nothing but a tick."
  1708  
  1709  "Where'd you get him?"
  1710  
  1711  "Out in the woods."
  1712  
  1713  "What'll you take for him?"
  1714  
  1715  "I don't know. I don't want to sell him."
  1716  
  1717  "All right. It's a mighty small tick, anyway."
  1718  
  1719  "Oh, anybody can run a tick down that don't belong to them. I'm
  1720  satisfied with it. It's a good enough tick for me."
  1721  
  1722  "Sho, there's ticks a plenty. I could have a thousand of 'em if I
  1723  wanted to."
  1724  
  1725  "Well, why don't you? Becuz you know mighty well you can't. This is a
  1726  pretty early tick, I reckon. It's the first one I've seen this year."
  1727  
  1728  "Say, Huck--I'll give you my tooth for him."
  1729  
  1730  "Less see it."
  1731  
  1732  Tom got out a bit of paper and carefully unrolled it. Huckleberry
  1733  viewed it wistfully. The temptation was very strong. At last he said:
  1734  
  1735  "Is it genuwyne?"
  1736  
  1737  Tom lifted his lip and showed the vacancy.
  1738  
  1739  "Well, all right," said Huckleberry, "it's a trade."
  1740  
  1741  Tom enclosed the tick in the percussion-cap box that had lately been
  1742  the pinchbug's prison, and the boys separated, each feeling wealthier
  1743  than before.
  1744  
  1745  When Tom reached the little isolated frame schoolhouse, he strode in
  1746  briskly, with the manner of one who had come with all honest speed.
  1747  He hung his hat on a peg and flung himself into his seat with
  1748  business-like alacrity. The master, throned on high in his great
  1749  splint-bottom arm-chair, was dozing, lulled by the drowsy hum of study.
  1750  The interruption roused him.
  1751  
  1752  "Thomas Sawyer!"
  1753  
  1754  Tom knew that when his name was pronounced in full, it meant trouble.
  1755  
  1756  "Sir!"
  1757  
  1758  "Come up here. Now, sir, why are you late again, as usual?"
  1759  
  1760  Tom was about to take refuge in a lie, when he saw two long tails of
  1761  yellow hair hanging down a back that he recognized by the electric
  1762  sympathy of love; and by that form was THE ONLY VACANT PLACE on the
  1763  girls' side of the schoolhouse. He instantly said:
  1764  
  1765  "I STOPPED TO TALK WITH HUCKLEBERRY FINN!"
  1766  
  1767  The master's pulse stood still, and he stared helplessly. The buzz of
  1768  study ceased. The pupils wondered if this foolhardy boy had lost his
  1769  mind. The master said:
  1770  
  1771  "You--you did what?"
  1772  
  1773  "Stopped to talk with Huckleberry Finn."
  1774  
  1775  There was no mistaking the words.
  1776  
  1777  "Thomas Sawyer, this is the most astounding confession I have ever
  1778  listened to. No mere ferule will answer for this offence. Take off your
  1779  jacket."
  1780  
  1781  The master's arm performed until it was tired and the stock of
  1782  switches notably diminished. Then the order followed:
  1783  
  1784  "Now, sir, go and sit with the girls! And let this be a warning to you."
  1785  
  1786  The titter that rippled around the room appeared to abash the boy, but
  1787  in reality that result was caused rather more by his worshipful awe of
  1788  his unknown idol and the dread pleasure that lay in his high good
  1789  fortune. He sat down upon the end of the pine bench and the girl
  1790  hitched herself away from him with a toss of her head. Nudges and winks
  1791  and whispers traversed the room, but Tom sat still, with his arms upon
  1792  the long, low desk before him, and seemed to study his book.
  1793  
  1794  By and by attention ceased from him, and the accustomed school murmur
  1795  rose upon the dull air once more. Presently the boy began to steal
  1796  furtive glances at the girl. She observed it, "made a mouth" at him and
  1797  gave him the back of her head for the space of a minute. When she
  1798  cautiously faced around again, a peach lay before her. She thrust it
  1799  away. Tom gently put it back. She thrust it away again, but with less
  1800  animosity. Tom patiently returned it to its place. Then she let it
  1801  remain. Tom scrawled on his slate, "Please take it--I got more." The
  1802  girl glanced at the words, but made no sign. Now the boy began to draw
  1803  something on the slate, hiding his work with his left hand. For a time
  1804  the girl refused to notice; but her human curiosity presently began to
  1805  manifest itself by hardly perceptible signs. The boy worked on,
  1806  apparently unconscious. The girl made a sort of noncommittal attempt to
  1807  see, but the boy did not betray that he was aware of it. At last she
  1808  gave in and hesitatingly whispered:
  1809  
  1810  "Let me see it."
  1811  
  1812  Tom partly uncovered a dismal caricature of a house with two gable
  1813  ends to it and a corkscrew of smoke issuing from the chimney. Then the
  1814  girl's interest began to fasten itself upon the work and she forgot
  1815  everything else. When it was finished, she gazed a moment, then
  1816  whispered:
  1817  
  1818  "It's nice--make a man."
  1819  
  1820  The artist erected a man in the front yard, that resembled a derrick.
  1821  He could have stepped over the house; but the girl was not
  1822  hypercritical; she was satisfied with the monster, and whispered:
  1823  
  1824  "It's a beautiful man--now make me coming along."
  1825  
  1826  Tom drew an hour-glass with a full moon and straw limbs to it and
  1827  armed the spreading fingers with a portentous fan. The girl said:
  1828  
  1829  "It's ever so nice--I wish I could draw."
  1830  
  1831  "It's easy," whispered Tom, "I'll learn you."
  1832  
  1833  "Oh, will you? When?"
  1834  
  1835  "At noon. Do you go home to dinner?"
  1836  
  1837  "I'll stay if you will."
  1838  
  1839  "Good--that's a whack. What's your name?"
  1840  
  1841  "Becky Thatcher. What's yours? Oh, I know. It's Thomas Sawyer."
  1842  
  1843  "That's the name they lick me by. I'm Tom when I'm good. You call me
  1844  Tom, will you?"
  1845  
  1846  "Yes."
  1847  
  1848  Now Tom began to scrawl something on the slate, hiding the words from
  1849  the girl. But she was not backward this time. She begged to see. Tom
  1850  said:
  1851  
  1852  "Oh, it ain't anything."
  1853  
  1854  "Yes it is."
  1855  
  1856  "No it ain't. You don't want to see."
  1857  
  1858  "Yes I do, indeed I do. Please let me."
  1859  
  1860  "You'll tell."
  1861  
  1862  "No I won't--deed and deed and double deed won't."
  1863  
  1864  "You won't tell anybody at all? Ever, as long as you live?"
  1865  
  1866  "No, I won't ever tell ANYbody. Now let me."
  1867  
  1868  "Oh, YOU don't want to see!"
  1869  
  1870  "Now that you treat me so, I WILL see." And she put her small hand
  1871  upon his and a little scuffle ensued, Tom pretending to resist in
  1872  earnest but letting his hand slip by degrees till these words were
  1873  revealed: "I LOVE YOU."
  1874  
  1875  "Oh, you bad thing!" And she hit his hand a smart rap, but reddened
  1876  and looked pleased, nevertheless.
  1877  
  1878  Just at this juncture the boy felt a slow, fateful grip closing on his
  1879  ear, and a steady lifting impulse. In that wise he was borne across the
  1880  house and deposited in his own seat, under a peppering fire of giggles
  1881  from the whole school. Then the master stood over him during a few
  1882  awful moments, and finally moved away to his throne without saying a
  1883  word. But although Tom's ear tingled, his heart was jubilant.
  1884  
  1885  As the school quieted down Tom made an honest effort to study, but the
  1886  turmoil within him was too great. In turn he took his place in the
  1887  reading class and made a botch of it; then in the geography class and
  1888  turned lakes into mountains, mountains into rivers, and rivers into
  1889  continents, till chaos was come again; then in the spelling class, and
  1890  got "turned down," by a succession of mere baby words, till he brought
  1891  up at the foot and yielded up the pewter medal which he had worn with
  1892  ostentation for months.
  1893  
  1894  
  1895  
  1896  CHAPTER VII
  1897  
  1898  THE harder Tom tried to fasten his mind on his book, the more his
  1899  ideas wandered. So at last, with a sigh and a yawn, he gave it up. It
  1900  seemed to him that the noon recess would never come. The air was
  1901  utterly dead. There was not a breath stirring. It was the sleepiest of
  1902  sleepy days. The drowsing murmur of the five and twenty studying
  1903  scholars soothed the soul like the spell that is in the murmur of bees.
  1904  Away off in the flaming sunshine, Cardiff Hill lifted its soft green
  1905  sides through a shimmering veil of heat, tinted with the purple of
  1906  distance; a few birds floated on lazy wing high in the air; no other
  1907  living thing was visible but some cows, and they were asleep. Tom's
  1908  heart ached to be free, or else to have something of interest to do to
  1909  pass the dreary time. His hand wandered into his pocket and his face
  1910  lit up with a glow of gratitude that was prayer, though he did not know
  1911  it. Then furtively the percussion-cap box came out. He released the
  1912  tick and put him on the long flat desk. The creature probably glowed
  1913  with a gratitude that amounted to prayer, too, at this moment, but it
  1914  was premature: for when he started thankfully to travel off, Tom turned
  1915  him aside with a pin and made him take a new direction.
  1916  
  1917  Tom's bosom friend sat next him, suffering just as Tom had been, and
  1918  now he was deeply and gratefully interested in this entertainment in an
  1919  instant. This bosom friend was Joe Harper. The two boys were sworn
  1920  friends all the week, and embattled enemies on Saturdays. Joe took a
  1921  pin out of his lapel and began to assist in exercising the prisoner.
  1922  The sport grew in interest momently. Soon Tom said that they were
  1923  interfering with each other, and neither getting the fullest benefit of
  1924  the tick. So he put Joe's slate on the desk and drew a line down the
  1925  middle of it from top to bottom.
  1926  
  1927  "Now," said he, "as long as he is on your side you can stir him up and
  1928  I'll let him alone; but if you let him get away and get on my side,
  1929  you're to leave him alone as long as I can keep him from crossing over."
  1930  
  1931  "All right, go ahead; start him up."
  1932  
  1933  The tick escaped from Tom, presently, and crossed the equator. Joe
  1934  harassed him awhile, and then he got away and crossed back again. This
  1935  change of base occurred often. While one boy was worrying the tick with
  1936  absorbing interest, the other would look on with interest as strong,
  1937  the two heads bowed together over the slate, and the two souls dead to
  1938  all things else. At last luck seemed to settle and abide with Joe. The
  1939  tick tried this, that, and the other course, and got as excited and as
  1940  anxious as the boys themselves, but time and again just as he would
  1941  have victory in his very grasp, so to speak, and Tom's fingers would be
  1942  twitching to begin, Joe's pin would deftly head him off, and keep
  1943  possession. At last Tom could stand it no longer. The temptation was
  1944  too strong. So he reached out and lent a hand with his pin. Joe was
  1945  angry in a moment. Said he:
  1946  
  1947  "Tom, you let him alone."
  1948  
  1949  "I only just want to stir him up a little, Joe."
  1950  
  1951  "No, sir, it ain't fair; you just let him alone."
  1952  
  1953  "Blame it, I ain't going to stir him much."
  1954  
  1955  "Let him alone, I tell you."
  1956  
  1957  "I won't!"
  1958  
  1959  "You shall--he's on my side of the line."
  1960  
  1961  "Look here, Joe Harper, whose is that tick?"
  1962  
  1963  "I don't care whose tick he is--he's on my side of the line, and you
  1964  sha'n't touch him."
  1965  
  1966  "Well, I'll just bet I will, though. He's my tick and I'll do what I
  1967  blame please with him, or die!"
  1968  
  1969  A tremendous whack came down on Tom's shoulders, and its duplicate on
  1970  Joe's; and for the space of two minutes the dust continued to fly from
  1971  the two jackets and the whole school to enjoy it. The boys had been too
  1972  absorbed to notice the hush that had stolen upon the school awhile
  1973  before when the master came tiptoeing down the room and stood over
  1974  them. He had contemplated a good part of the performance before he
  1975  contributed his bit of variety to it.
  1976  
  1977  When school broke up at noon, Tom flew to Becky Thatcher, and
  1978  whispered in her ear:
  1979  
  1980  "Put on your bonnet and let on you're going home; and when you get to
  1981  the corner, give the rest of 'em the slip, and turn down through the
  1982  lane and come back. I'll go the other way and come it over 'em the same
  1983  way."
  1984  
  1985  So the one went off with one group of scholars, and the other with
  1986  another. In a little while the two met at the bottom of the lane, and
  1987  when they reached the school they had it all to themselves. Then they
  1988  sat together, with a slate before them, and Tom gave Becky the pencil
  1989  and held her hand in his, guiding it, and so created another surprising
  1990  house. When the interest in art began to wane, the two fell to talking.
  1991  Tom was swimming in bliss. He said:
  1992  
  1993  "Do you love rats?"
  1994  
  1995  "No! I hate them!"
  1996  
  1997  "Well, I do, too--LIVE ones. But I mean dead ones, to swing round your
  1998  head with a string."
  1999  
  2000  "No, I don't care for rats much, anyway. What I like is chewing-gum."
  2001  
  2002  "Oh, I should say so! I wish I had some now."
  2003  
  2004  "Do you? I've got some. I'll let you chew it awhile, but you must give
  2005  it back to me."
  2006  
  2007  That was agreeable, so they chewed it turn about, and dangled their
  2008  legs against the bench in excess of contentment.
  2009  
  2010  "Was you ever at a circus?" said Tom.
  2011  
  2012  "Yes, and my pa's going to take me again some time, if I'm good."
  2013  
  2014  "I been to the circus three or four times--lots of times. Church ain't
  2015  shucks to a circus. There's things going on at a circus all the time.
  2016  I'm going to be a clown in a circus when I grow up."
  2017  
  2018  "Oh, are you! That will be nice. They're so lovely, all spotted up."
  2019  
  2020  "Yes, that's so. And they get slathers of money--most a dollar a day,
  2021  Ben Rogers says. Say, Becky, was you ever engaged?"
  2022  
  2023  "What's that?"
  2024  
  2025  "Why, engaged to be married."
  2026  
  2027  "No."
  2028  
  2029  "Would you like to?"
  2030  
  2031  "I reckon so. I don't know. What is it like?"
  2032  
  2033  "Like? Why it ain't like anything. You only just tell a boy you won't
  2034  ever have anybody but him, ever ever ever, and then you kiss and that's
  2035  all. Anybody can do it."
  2036  
  2037  "Kiss? What do you kiss for?"
  2038  
  2039  "Why, that, you know, is to--well, they always do that."
  2040  
  2041  "Everybody?"
  2042  
  2043  "Why, yes, everybody that's in love with each other. Do you remember
  2044  what I wrote on the slate?"
  2045  
  2046  "Ye--yes."
  2047  
  2048  "What was it?"
  2049  
  2050  "I sha'n't tell you."
  2051  
  2052  "Shall I tell YOU?"
  2053  
  2054  "Ye--yes--but some other time."
  2055  
  2056  "No, now."
  2057  
  2058  "No, not now--to-morrow."
  2059  
  2060  "Oh, no, NOW. Please, Becky--I'll whisper it, I'll whisper it ever so
  2061  easy."
  2062  
  2063  Becky hesitating, Tom took silence for consent, and passed his arm
  2064  about her waist and whispered the tale ever so softly, with his mouth
  2065  close to her ear. And then he added:
  2066  
  2067  "Now you whisper it to me--just the same."
  2068  
  2069  She resisted, for a while, and then said:
  2070  
  2071  "You turn your face away so you can't see, and then I will. But you
  2072  mustn't ever tell anybody--WILL you, Tom? Now you won't, WILL you?"
  2073  
  2074  "No, indeed, indeed I won't. Now, Becky."
  2075  
  2076  He turned his face away. She bent timidly around till her breath
  2077  stirred his curls and whispered, "I--love--you!"
  2078  
  2079  Then she sprang away and ran around and around the desks and benches,
  2080  with Tom after her, and took refuge in a corner at last, with her
  2081  little white apron to her face. Tom clasped her about her neck and
  2082  pleaded:
  2083  
  2084  "Now, Becky, it's all done--all over but the kiss. Don't you be afraid
  2085  of that--it ain't anything at all. Please, Becky." And he tugged at her
  2086  apron and the hands.
  2087  
  2088  By and by she gave up, and let her hands drop; her face, all glowing
  2089  with the struggle, came up and submitted. Tom kissed the red lips and
  2090  said:
  2091  
  2092  "Now it's all done, Becky. And always after this, you know, you ain't
  2093  ever to love anybody but me, and you ain't ever to marry anybody but
  2094  me, ever never and forever. Will you?"
  2095  
  2096  "No, I'll never love anybody but you, Tom, and I'll never marry
  2097  anybody but you--and you ain't to ever marry anybody but me, either."
  2098  
  2099  "Certainly. Of course. That's PART of it. And always coming to school
  2100  or when we're going home, you're to walk with me, when there ain't
  2101  anybody looking--and you choose me and I choose you at parties, because
  2102  that's the way you do when you're engaged."
  2103  
  2104  "It's so nice. I never heard of it before."
  2105  
  2106  "Oh, it's ever so gay! Why, me and Amy Lawrence--"
  2107  
  2108  The big eyes told Tom his blunder and he stopped, confused.
  2109  
  2110  "Oh, Tom! Then I ain't the first you've ever been engaged to!"
  2111  
  2112  The child began to cry. Tom said:
  2113  
  2114  "Oh, don't cry, Becky, I don't care for her any more."
  2115  
  2116  "Yes, you do, Tom--you know you do."
  2117  
  2118  Tom tried to put his arm about her neck, but she pushed him away and
  2119  turned her face to the wall, and went on crying. Tom tried again, with
  2120  soothing words in his mouth, and was repulsed again. Then his pride was
  2121  up, and he strode away and went outside. He stood about, restless and
  2122  uneasy, for a while, glancing at the door, every now and then, hoping
  2123  she would repent and come to find him. But she did not. Then he began
  2124  to feel badly and fear that he was in the wrong. It was a hard struggle
  2125  with him to make new advances, now, but he nerved himself to it and
  2126  entered. She was still standing back there in the corner, sobbing, with
  2127  her face to the wall. Tom's heart smote him. He went to her and stood a
  2128  moment, not knowing exactly how to proceed. Then he said hesitatingly:
  2129  
  2130  "Becky, I--I don't care for anybody but you."
  2131  
  2132  No reply--but sobs.
  2133  
  2134  "Becky"--pleadingly. "Becky, won't you say something?"
  2135  
  2136  More sobs.
  2137  
  2138  Tom got out his chiefest jewel, a brass knob from the top of an
  2139  andiron, and passed it around her so that she could see it, and said:
  2140  
  2141  "Please, Becky, won't you take it?"
  2142  
  2143  She struck it to the floor. Then Tom marched out of the house and over
  2144  the hills and far away, to return to school no more that day. Presently
  2145  Becky began to suspect. She ran to the door; he was not in sight; she
  2146  flew around to the play-yard; he was not there. Then she called:
  2147  
  2148  "Tom! Come back, Tom!"
  2149  
  2150  She listened intently, but there was no answer. She had no companions
  2151  but silence and loneliness. So she sat down to cry again and upbraid
  2152  herself; and by this time the scholars began to gather again, and she
  2153  had to hide her griefs and still her broken heart and take up the cross
  2154  of a long, dreary, aching afternoon, with none among the strangers
  2155  about her to exchange sorrows with.
  2156  
  2157  
  2158  
  2159  CHAPTER VIII
  2160  
  2161  TOM dodged hither and thither through lanes until he was well out of
  2162  the track of returning scholars, and then fell into a moody jog. He
  2163  crossed a small "branch" two or three times, because of a prevailing
  2164  juvenile superstition that to cross water baffled pursuit. Half an hour
  2165  later he was disappearing behind the Douglas mansion on the summit of
  2166  Cardiff Hill, and the schoolhouse was hardly distinguishable away off
  2167  in the valley behind him. He entered a dense wood, picked his pathless
  2168  way to the centre of it, and sat down on a mossy spot under a spreading
  2169  oak. There was not even a zephyr stirring; the dead noonday heat had
  2170  even stilled the songs of the birds; nature lay in a trance that was
  2171  broken by no sound but the occasional far-off hammering of a
  2172  woodpecker, and this seemed to render the pervading silence and sense
  2173  of loneliness the more profound. The boy's soul was steeped in
  2174  melancholy; his feelings were in happy accord with his surroundings. He
  2175  sat long with his elbows on his knees and his chin in his hands,
  2176  meditating. It seemed to him that life was but a trouble, at best, and
  2177  he more than half envied Jimmy Hodges, so lately released; it must be
  2178  very peaceful, he thought, to lie and slumber and dream forever and
  2179  ever, with the wind whispering through the trees and caressing the
  2180  grass and the flowers over the grave, and nothing to bother and grieve
  2181  about, ever any more. If he only had a clean Sunday-school record he
  2182  could be willing to go, and be done with it all. Now as to this girl.
  2183  What had he done? Nothing. He had meant the best in the world, and been
  2184  treated like a dog--like a very dog. She would be sorry some day--maybe
  2185  when it was too late. Ah, if he could only die TEMPORARILY!
  2186  
  2187  But the elastic heart of youth cannot be compressed into one
  2188  constrained shape long at a time. Tom presently began to drift
  2189  insensibly back into the concerns of this life again. What if he turned
  2190  his back, now, and disappeared mysteriously? What if he went away--ever
  2191  so far away, into unknown countries beyond the seas--and never came
  2192  back any more! How would she feel then! The idea of being a clown
  2193  recurred to him now, only to fill him with disgust. For frivolity and
  2194  jokes and spotted tights were an offense, when they intruded themselves
  2195  upon a spirit that was exalted into the vague august realm of the
  2196  romantic. No, he would be a soldier, and return after long years, all
  2197  war-worn and illustrious. No--better still, he would join the Indians,
  2198  and hunt buffaloes and go on the warpath in the mountain ranges and the
  2199  trackless great plains of the Far West, and away in the future come
  2200  back a great chief, bristling with feathers, hideous with paint, and
  2201  prance into Sunday-school, some drowsy summer morning, with a
  2202  bloodcurdling war-whoop, and sear the eyeballs of all his companions
  2203  with unappeasable envy. But no, there was something gaudier even than
  2204  this. He would be a pirate! That was it! NOW his future lay plain
  2205  before him, and glowing with unimaginable splendor. How his name would
  2206  fill the world, and make people shudder! How gloriously he would go
  2207  plowing the dancing seas, in his long, low, black-hulled racer, the
  2208  Spirit of the Storm, with his grisly flag flying at the fore! And at
  2209  the zenith of his fame, how he would suddenly appear at the old village
  2210  and stalk into church, brown and weather-beaten, in his black velvet
  2211  doublet and trunks, his great jack-boots, his crimson sash, his belt
  2212  bristling with horse-pistols, his crime-rusted cutlass at his side, his
  2213  slouch hat with waving plumes, his black flag unfurled, with the skull
  2214  and crossbones on it, and hear with swelling ecstasy the whisperings,
  2215  "It's Tom Sawyer the Pirate!--the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main!"
  2216  
  2217  Yes, it was settled; his career was determined. He would run away from
  2218  home and enter upon it. He would start the very next morning. Therefore
  2219  he must now begin to get ready. He would collect his resources
  2220  together. He went to a rotten log near at hand and began to dig under
  2221  one end of it with his Barlow knife. He soon struck wood that sounded
  2222  hollow. He put his hand there and uttered this incantation impressively:
  2223  
  2224  "What hasn't come here, come! What's here, stay here!"
  2225  
  2226  Then he scraped away the dirt, and exposed a pine shingle. He took it
  2227  up and disclosed a shapely little treasure-house whose bottom and sides
  2228  were of shingles. In it lay a marble. Tom's astonishment was boundless!
  2229  He scratched his head with a perplexed air, and said:
  2230  
  2231  "Well, that beats anything!"
  2232  
  2233  Then he tossed the marble away pettishly, and stood cogitating. The
  2234  truth was, that a superstition of his had failed, here, which he and
  2235  all his comrades had always looked upon as infallible. If you buried a
  2236  marble with certain necessary incantations, and left it alone a
  2237  fortnight, and then opened the place with the incantation he had just
  2238  used, you would find that all the marbles you had ever lost had
  2239  gathered themselves together there, meantime, no matter how widely they
  2240  had been separated. But now, this thing had actually and unquestionably
  2241  failed. Tom's whole structure of faith was shaken to its foundations.
  2242  He had many a time heard of this thing succeeding but never of its
  2243  failing before. It did not occur to him that he had tried it several
  2244  times before, himself, but could never find the hiding-places
  2245  afterward. He puzzled over the matter some time, and finally decided
  2246  that some witch had interfered and broken the charm. He thought he
  2247  would satisfy himself on that point; so he searched around till he
  2248  found a small sandy spot with a little funnel-shaped depression in it.
  2249  He laid himself down and put his mouth close to this depression and
  2250  called--
  2251  
  2252  "Doodle-bug, doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know! Doodle-bug,
  2253  doodle-bug, tell me what I want to know!"
  2254  
  2255  The sand began to work, and presently a small black bug appeared for a
  2256  second and then darted under again in a fright.
  2257  
  2258  "He dasn't tell! So it WAS a witch that done it. I just knowed it."
  2259  
  2260  He well knew the futility of trying to contend against witches, so he
  2261  gave up discouraged. But it occurred to him that he might as well have
  2262  the marble he had just thrown away, and therefore he went and made a
  2263  patient search for it. But he could not find it. Now he went back to
  2264  his treasure-house and carefully placed himself just as he had been
  2265  standing when he tossed the marble away; then he took another marble
  2266  from his pocket and tossed it in the same way, saying:
  2267  
  2268  "Brother, go find your brother!"
  2269  
  2270  He watched where it stopped, and went there and looked. But it must
  2271  have fallen short or gone too far; so he tried twice more. The last
  2272  repetition was successful. The two marbles lay within a foot of each
  2273  other.
  2274  
  2275  Just here the blast of a toy tin trumpet came faintly down the green
  2276  aisles of the forest. Tom flung off his jacket and trousers, turned a
  2277  suspender into a belt, raked away some brush behind the rotten log,
  2278  disclosing a rude bow and arrow, a lath sword and a tin trumpet, and in
  2279  a moment had seized these things and bounded away, barelegged, with
  2280  fluttering shirt. He presently halted under a great elm, blew an
  2281  answering blast, and then began to tiptoe and look warily out, this way
  2282  and that. He said cautiously--to an imaginary company:
  2283  
  2284  "Hold, my merry men! Keep hid till I blow."
  2285  
  2286  Now appeared Joe Harper, as airily clad and elaborately armed as Tom.
  2287  Tom called:
  2288  
  2289  "Hold! Who comes here into Sherwood Forest without my pass?"
  2290  
  2291  "Guy of Guisborne wants no man's pass. Who art thou that--that--"
  2292  
  2293  "Dares to hold such language," said Tom, prompting--for they talked
  2294  "by the book," from memory.
  2295  
  2296  "Who art thou that dares to hold such language?"
  2297  
  2298  "I, indeed! I am Robin Hood, as thy caitiff carcase soon shall know."
  2299  
  2300  "Then art thou indeed that famous outlaw? Right gladly will I dispute
  2301  with thee the passes of the merry wood. Have at thee!"
  2302  
  2303  They took their lath swords, dumped their other traps on the ground,
  2304  struck a fencing attitude, foot to foot, and began a grave, careful
  2305  combat, "two up and two down." Presently Tom said:
  2306  
  2307  "Now, if you've got the hang, go it lively!"
  2308  
  2309  So they "went it lively," panting and perspiring with the work. By and
  2310  by Tom shouted:
  2311  
  2312  "Fall! fall! Why don't you fall?"
  2313  
  2314  "I sha'n't! Why don't you fall yourself? You're getting the worst of
  2315  it."
  2316  
  2317  "Why, that ain't anything. I can't fall; that ain't the way it is in
  2318  the book. The book says, 'Then with one back-handed stroke he slew poor
  2319  Guy of Guisborne.' You're to turn around and let me hit you in the
  2320  back."
  2321  
  2322  There was no getting around the authorities, so Joe turned, received
  2323  the whack and fell.
  2324  
  2325  "Now," said Joe, getting up, "you got to let me kill YOU. That's fair."
  2326  
  2327  "Why, I can't do that, it ain't in the book."
  2328  
  2329  "Well, it's blamed mean--that's all."
  2330  
  2331  "Well, say, Joe, you can be Friar Tuck or Much the miller's son, and
  2332  lam me with a quarter-staff; or I'll be the Sheriff of Nottingham and
  2333  you be Robin Hood a little while and kill me."
  2334  
  2335  This was satisfactory, and so these adventures were carried out. Then
  2336  Tom became Robin Hood again, and was allowed by the treacherous nun to
  2337  bleed his strength away through his neglected wound. And at last Joe,
  2338  representing a whole tribe of weeping outlaws, dragged him sadly forth,
  2339  gave his bow into his feeble hands, and Tom said, "Where this arrow
  2340  falls, there bury poor Robin Hood under the greenwood tree." Then he
  2341  shot the arrow and fell back and would have died, but he lit on a
  2342  nettle and sprang up too gaily for a corpse.
  2343  
  2344  The boys dressed themselves, hid their accoutrements, and went off
  2345  grieving that there were no outlaws any more, and wondering what modern
  2346  civilization could claim to have done to compensate for their loss.
  2347  They said they would rather be outlaws a year in Sherwood Forest than
  2348  President of the United States forever.
  2349  
  2350  
  2351  
  2352  CHAPTER IX
  2353  
  2354  AT half-past nine, that night, Tom and Sid were sent to bed, as usual.
  2355  They said their prayers, and Sid was soon asleep. Tom lay awake and
  2356  waited, in restless impatience. When it seemed to him that it must be
  2357  nearly daylight, he heard the clock strike ten! This was despair. He
  2358  would have tossed and fidgeted, as his nerves demanded, but he was
  2359  afraid he might wake Sid. So he lay still, and stared up into the dark.
  2360  Everything was dismally still. By and by, out of the stillness, little,
  2361  scarcely perceptible noises began to emphasize themselves. The ticking
  2362  of the clock began to bring itself into notice. Old beams began to
  2363  crack mysteriously. The stairs creaked faintly. Evidently spirits were
  2364  abroad. A measured, muffled snore issued from Aunt Polly's chamber. And
  2365  now the tiresome chirping of a cricket that no human ingenuity could
  2366  locate, began. Next the ghastly ticking of a deathwatch in the wall at
  2367  the bed's head made Tom shudder--it meant that somebody's days were
  2368  numbered. Then the howl of a far-off dog rose on the night air, and was
  2369  answered by a fainter howl from a remoter distance. Tom was in an
  2370  agony. At last he was satisfied that time had ceased and eternity
  2371  begun; he began to doze, in spite of himself; the clock chimed eleven,
  2372  but he did not hear it. And then there came, mingling with his
  2373  half-formed dreams, a most melancholy caterwauling. The raising of a
  2374  neighboring window disturbed him. A cry of "Scat! you devil!" and the
  2375  crash of an empty bottle against the back of his aunt's woodshed
  2376  brought him wide awake, and a single minute later he was dressed and
  2377  out of the window and creeping along the roof of the "ell" on all
  2378  fours. He "meow'd" with caution once or twice, as he went; then jumped
  2379  to the roof of the woodshed and thence to the ground. Huckleberry Finn
  2380  was there, with his dead cat. The boys moved off and disappeared in the
  2381  gloom. At the end of half an hour they were wading through the tall
  2382  grass of the graveyard.
  2383  
  2384  It was a graveyard of the old-fashioned Western kind. It was on a
  2385  hill, about a mile and a half from the village. It had a crazy board
  2386  fence around it, which leaned inward in places, and outward the rest of
  2387  the time, but stood upright nowhere. Grass and weeds grew rank over the
  2388  whole cemetery. All the old graves were sunken in, there was not a
  2389  tombstone on the place; round-topped, worm-eaten boards staggered over
  2390  the graves, leaning for support and finding none. "Sacred to the memory
  2391  of" So-and-So had been painted on them once, but it could no longer
  2392  have been read, on the most of them, now, even if there had been light.
  2393  
  2394  A faint wind moaned through the trees, and Tom feared it might be the
  2395  spirits of the dead, complaining at being disturbed. The boys talked
  2396  little, and only under their breath, for the time and the place and the
  2397  pervading solemnity and silence oppressed their spirits. They found the
  2398  sharp new heap they were seeking, and ensconced themselves within the
  2399  protection of three great elms that grew in a bunch within a few feet
  2400  of the grave.
  2401  
  2402  Then they waited in silence for what seemed a long time. The hooting
  2403  of a distant owl was all the sound that troubled the dead stillness.
  2404  Tom's reflections grew oppressive. He must force some talk. So he said
  2405  in a whisper:
  2406  
  2407  "Hucky, do you believe the dead people like it for us to be here?"
  2408  
  2409  Huckleberry whispered:
  2410  
  2411  "I wisht I knowed. It's awful solemn like, AIN'T it?"
  2412  
  2413  "I bet it is."
  2414  
  2415  There was a considerable pause, while the boys canvassed this matter
  2416  inwardly. Then Tom whispered:
  2417  
  2418  "Say, Hucky--do you reckon Hoss Williams hears us talking?"
  2419  
  2420  "O' course he does. Least his sperrit does."
  2421  
  2422  Tom, after a pause:
  2423  
  2424  "I wish I'd said Mister Williams. But I never meant any harm.
  2425  Everybody calls him Hoss."
  2426  
  2427  "A body can't be too partic'lar how they talk 'bout these-yer dead
  2428  people, Tom."
  2429  
  2430  This was a damper, and conversation died again.
  2431  
  2432  Presently Tom seized his comrade's arm and said:
  2433  
  2434  "Sh!"
  2435  
  2436  "What is it, Tom?" And the two clung together with beating hearts.
  2437  
  2438  "Sh! There 'tis again! Didn't you hear it?"
  2439  
  2440  "I--"
  2441  
  2442  "There! Now you hear it."
  2443  
  2444  "Lord, Tom, they're coming! They're coming, sure. What'll we do?"
  2445  
  2446  "I dono. Think they'll see us?"
  2447  
  2448  "Oh, Tom, they can see in the dark, same as cats. I wisht I hadn't
  2449  come."
  2450  
  2451  "Oh, don't be afeard. I don't believe they'll bother us. We ain't
  2452  doing any harm. If we keep perfectly still, maybe they won't notice us
  2453  at all."
  2454  
  2455  "I'll try to, Tom, but, Lord, I'm all of a shiver."
  2456  
  2457  "Listen!"
  2458  
  2459  The boys bent their heads together and scarcely breathed. A muffled
  2460  sound of voices floated up from the far end of the graveyard.
  2461  
  2462  "Look! See there!" whispered Tom. "What is it?"
  2463  
  2464  "It's devil-fire. Oh, Tom, this is awful."
  2465  
  2466  Some vague figures approached through the gloom, swinging an
  2467  old-fashioned tin lantern that freckled the ground with innumerable
  2468  little spangles of light. Presently Huckleberry whispered with a
  2469  shudder:
  2470  
  2471  "It's the devils sure enough. Three of 'em! Lordy, Tom, we're goners!
  2472  Can you pray?"
  2473  
  2474  "I'll try, but don't you be afeard. They ain't going to hurt us. 'Now
  2475  I lay me down to sleep, I--'"
  2476  
  2477  "Sh!"
  2478  
  2479  "What is it, Huck?"
  2480  
  2481  "They're HUMANS! One of 'em is, anyway. One of 'em's old Muff Potter's
  2482  voice."
  2483  
  2484  "No--'tain't so, is it?"
  2485  
  2486  "I bet I know it. Don't you stir nor budge. He ain't sharp enough to
  2487  notice us. Drunk, the same as usual, likely--blamed old rip!"
  2488  
  2489  "All right, I'll keep still. Now they're stuck. Can't find it. Here
  2490  they come again. Now they're hot. Cold again. Hot again. Red hot!
  2491  They're p'inted right, this time. Say, Huck, I know another o' them
  2492  voices; it's Injun Joe."
  2493  
  2494  "That's so--that murderin' half-breed! I'd druther they was devils a
  2495  dern sight. What kin they be up to?"
  2496  
  2497  The whisper died wholly out, now, for the three men had reached the
  2498  grave and stood within a few feet of the boys' hiding-place.
  2499  
  2500  "Here it is," said the third voice; and the owner of it held the
  2501  lantern up and revealed the face of young Doctor Robinson.
  2502  
  2503  Potter and Injun Joe were carrying a handbarrow with a rope and a
  2504  couple of shovels on it. They cast down their load and began to open
  2505  the grave. The doctor put the lantern at the head of the grave and came
  2506  and sat down with his back against one of the elm trees. He was so
  2507  close the boys could have touched him.
  2508  
  2509  "Hurry, men!" he said, in a low voice; "the moon might come out at any
  2510  moment."
  2511  
  2512  They growled a response and went on digging. For some time there was
  2513  no noise but the grating sound of the spades discharging their freight
  2514  of mould and gravel. It was very monotonous. Finally a spade struck
  2515  upon the coffin with a dull woody accent, and within another minute or
  2516  two the men had hoisted it out on the ground. They pried off the lid
  2517  with their shovels, got out the body and dumped it rudely on the
  2518  ground. The moon drifted from behind the clouds and exposed the pallid
  2519  face. The barrow was got ready and the corpse placed on it, covered
  2520  with a blanket, and bound to its place with the rope. Potter took out a
  2521  large spring-knife and cut off the dangling end of the rope and then
  2522  said:
  2523  
  2524  "Now the cussed thing's ready, Sawbones, and you'll just out with
  2525  another five, or here she stays."
  2526  
  2527  "That's the talk!" said Injun Joe.
  2528  
  2529  "Look here, what does this mean?" said the doctor. "You required your
  2530  pay in advance, and I've paid you."
  2531  
  2532  "Yes, and you done more than that," said Injun Joe, approaching the
  2533  doctor, who was now standing. "Five years ago you drove me away from
  2534  your father's kitchen one night, when I come to ask for something to
  2535  eat, and you said I warn't there for any good; and when I swore I'd get
  2536  even with you if it took a hundred years, your father had me jailed for
  2537  a vagrant. Did you think I'd forget? The Injun blood ain't in me for
  2538  nothing. And now I've GOT you, and you got to SETTLE, you know!"
  2539  
  2540  He was threatening the doctor, with his fist in his face, by this
  2541  time. The doctor struck out suddenly and stretched the ruffian on the
  2542  ground. Potter dropped his knife, and exclaimed:
  2543  
  2544  "Here, now, don't you hit my pard!" and the next moment he had
  2545  grappled with the doctor and the two were struggling with might and
  2546  main, trampling the grass and tearing the ground with their heels.
  2547  Injun Joe sprang to his feet, his eyes flaming with passion, snatched
  2548  up Potter's knife, and went creeping, catlike and stooping, round and
  2549  round about the combatants, seeking an opportunity. All at once the
  2550  doctor flung himself free, seized the heavy headboard of Williams'
  2551  grave and felled Potter to the earth with it--and in the same instant
  2552  the half-breed saw his chance and drove the knife to the hilt in the
  2553  young man's breast. He reeled and fell partly upon Potter, flooding him
  2554  with his blood, and in the same moment the clouds blotted out the
  2555  dreadful spectacle and the two frightened boys went speeding away in
  2556  the dark.
  2557  
  2558  Presently, when the moon emerged again, Injun Joe was standing over
  2559  the two forms, contemplating them. The doctor murmured inarticulately,
  2560  gave a long gasp or two and was still. The half-breed muttered:
  2561  
  2562  "THAT score is settled--damn you."
  2563  
  2564  Then he robbed the body. After which he put the fatal knife in
  2565  Potter's open right hand, and sat down on the dismantled coffin. Three
  2566  --four--five minutes passed, and then Potter began to stir and moan. His
  2567  hand closed upon the knife; he raised it, glanced at it, and let it
  2568  fall, with a shudder. Then he sat up, pushing the body from him, and
  2569  gazed at it, and then around him, confusedly. His eyes met Joe's.
  2570  
  2571  "Lord, how is this, Joe?" he said.
  2572  
  2573  "It's a dirty business," said Joe, without moving.
  2574  
  2575  "What did you do it for?"
  2576  
  2577  "I! I never done it!"
  2578  
  2579  "Look here! That kind of talk won't wash."
  2580  
  2581  Potter trembled and grew white.
  2582  
  2583  "I thought I'd got sober. I'd no business to drink to-night. But it's
  2584  in my head yet--worse'n when we started here. I'm all in a muddle;
  2585  can't recollect anything of it, hardly. Tell me, Joe--HONEST, now, old
  2586  feller--did I do it? Joe, I never meant to--'pon my soul and honor, I
  2587  never meant to, Joe. Tell me how it was, Joe. Oh, it's awful--and him
  2588  so young and promising."
  2589  
  2590  "Why, you two was scuffling, and he fetched you one with the headboard
  2591  and you fell flat; and then up you come, all reeling and staggering
  2592  like, and snatched the knife and jammed it into him, just as he fetched
  2593  you another awful clip--and here you've laid, as dead as a wedge til
  2594  now."
  2595  
  2596  "Oh, I didn't know what I was a-doing. I wish I may die this minute if
  2597  I did. It was all on account of the whiskey and the excitement, I
  2598  reckon. I never used a weepon in my life before, Joe. I've fought, but
  2599  never with weepons. They'll all say that. Joe, don't tell! Say you
  2600  won't tell, Joe--that's a good feller. I always liked you, Joe, and
  2601  stood up for you, too. Don't you remember? You WON'T tell, WILL you,
  2602  Joe?" And the poor creature dropped on his knees before the stolid
  2603  murderer, and clasped his appealing hands.
  2604  
  2605  "No, you've always been fair and square with me, Muff Potter, and I
  2606  won't go back on you. There, now, that's as fair as a man can say."
  2607  
  2608  "Oh, Joe, you're an angel. I'll bless you for this the longest day I
  2609  live." And Potter began to cry.
  2610  
  2611  "Come, now, that's enough of that. This ain't any time for blubbering.
  2612  You be off yonder way and I'll go this. Move, now, and don't leave any
  2613  tracks behind you."
  2614  
  2615  Potter started on a trot that quickly increased to a run. The
  2616  half-breed stood looking after him. He muttered:
  2617  
  2618  "If he's as much stunned with the lick and fuddled with the rum as he
  2619  had the look of being, he won't think of the knife till he's gone so
  2620  far he'll be afraid to come back after it to such a place by himself
  2621  --chicken-heart!"
  2622  
  2623  Two or three minutes later the murdered man, the blanketed corpse, the
  2624  lidless coffin, and the open grave were under no inspection but the
  2625  moon's. The stillness was complete again, too.
  2626  
  2627  
  2628  
  2629  CHAPTER X
  2630  
  2631  THE two boys flew on and on, toward the village, speechless with
  2632  horror. They glanced backward over their shoulders from time to time,
  2633  apprehensively, as if they feared they might be followed. Every stump
  2634  that started up in their path seemed a man and an enemy, and made them
  2635  catch their breath; and as they sped by some outlying cottages that lay
  2636  near the village, the barking of the aroused watch-dogs seemed to give
  2637  wings to their feet.
  2638  
  2639  "If we can only get to the old tannery before we break down!"
  2640  whispered Tom, in short catches between breaths. "I can't stand it much
  2641  longer."
  2642  
  2643  Huckleberry's hard pantings were his only reply, and the boys fixed
  2644  their eyes on the goal of their hopes and bent to their work to win it.
  2645  They gained steadily on it, and at last, breast to breast, they burst
  2646  through the open door and fell grateful and exhausted in the sheltering
  2647  shadows beyond. By and by their pulses slowed down, and Tom whispered:
  2648  
  2649  "Huckleberry, what do you reckon'll come of this?"
  2650  
  2651  "If Doctor Robinson dies, I reckon hanging'll come of it."
  2652  
  2653  "Do you though?"
  2654  
  2655  "Why, I KNOW it, Tom."
  2656  
  2657  Tom thought a while, then he said:
  2658  
  2659  "Who'll tell? We?"
  2660  
  2661  "What are you talking about? S'pose something happened and Injun Joe
  2662  DIDN'T hang? Why, he'd kill us some time or other, just as dead sure as
  2663  we're a laying here."
  2664  
  2665  "That's just what I was thinking to myself, Huck."
  2666  
  2667  "If anybody tells, let Muff Potter do it, if he's fool enough. He's
  2668  generally drunk enough."
  2669  
  2670  Tom said nothing--went on thinking. Presently he whispered:
  2671  
  2672  "Huck, Muff Potter don't know it. How can he tell?"
  2673  
  2674  "What's the reason he don't know it?"
  2675  
  2676  "Because he'd just got that whack when Injun Joe done it. D'you reckon
  2677  he could see anything? D'you reckon he knowed anything?"
  2678  
  2679  "By hokey, that's so, Tom!"
  2680  
  2681  "And besides, look-a-here--maybe that whack done for HIM!"
  2682  
  2683  "No, 'taint likely, Tom. He had liquor in him; I could see that; and
  2684  besides, he always has. Well, when pap's full, you might take and belt
  2685  him over the head with a church and you couldn't phase him. He says so,
  2686  his own self. So it's the same with Muff Potter, of course. But if a
  2687  man was dead sober, I reckon maybe that whack might fetch him; I dono."
  2688  
  2689  After another reflective silence, Tom said:
  2690  
  2691  "Hucky, you sure you can keep mum?"
  2692  
  2693  "Tom, we GOT to keep mum. You know that. That Injun devil wouldn't
  2694  make any more of drownding us than a couple of cats, if we was to
  2695  squeak 'bout this and they didn't hang him. Now, look-a-here, Tom, less
  2696  take and swear to one another--that's what we got to do--swear to keep
  2697  mum."
  2698  
  2699  "I'm agreed. It's the best thing. Would you just hold hands and swear
  2700  that we--"
  2701  
  2702  "Oh no, that wouldn't do for this. That's good enough for little
  2703  rubbishy common things--specially with gals, cuz THEY go back on you
  2704  anyway, and blab if they get in a huff--but there orter be writing
  2705  'bout a big thing like this. And blood."
  2706  
  2707  Tom's whole being applauded this idea. It was deep, and dark, and
  2708  awful; the hour, the circumstances, the surroundings, were in keeping
  2709  with it. He picked up a clean pine shingle that lay in the moonlight,
  2710  took a little fragment of "red keel" out of his pocket, got the moon on
  2711  his work, and painfully scrawled these lines, emphasizing each slow
  2712  down-stroke by clamping his tongue between his teeth, and letting up
  2713  the pressure on the up-strokes. [See next page.]
  2714  
  2715     "Huck Finn and
  2716      Tom Sawyer swears
  2717      they will keep mum
  2718      about This and They
  2719      wish They may Drop
  2720      down dead in Their
  2721      Tracks if They ever
  2722      Tell and Rot."
  2723  
  2724  Huckleberry was filled with admiration of Tom's facility in writing,
  2725  and the sublimity of his language. He at once took a pin from his lapel
  2726  and was going to prick his flesh, but Tom said:
  2727  
  2728  "Hold on! Don't do that. A pin's brass. It might have verdigrease on
  2729  it."
  2730  
  2731  "What's verdigrease?"
  2732  
  2733  "It's p'ison. That's what it is. You just swaller some of it once
  2734  --you'll see."
  2735  
  2736  So Tom unwound the thread from one of his needles, and each boy
  2737  pricked the ball of his thumb and squeezed out a drop of blood. In
  2738  time, after many squeezes, Tom managed to sign his initials, using the
  2739  ball of his little finger for a pen. Then he showed Huckleberry how to
  2740  make an H and an F, and the oath was complete. They buried the shingle
  2741  close to the wall, with some dismal ceremonies and incantations, and
  2742  the fetters that bound their tongues were considered to be locked and
  2743  the key thrown away.
  2744  
  2745  A figure crept stealthily through a break in the other end of the
  2746  ruined building, now, but they did not notice it.
  2747  
  2748  "Tom," whispered Huckleberry, "does this keep us from EVER telling
  2749  --ALWAYS?"
  2750  
  2751  "Of course it does. It don't make any difference WHAT happens, we got
  2752  to keep mum. We'd drop down dead--don't YOU know that?"
  2753  
  2754  "Yes, I reckon that's so."
  2755  
  2756  They continued to whisper for some little time. Presently a dog set up
  2757  a long, lugubrious howl just outside--within ten feet of them. The boys
  2758  clasped each other suddenly, in an agony of fright.
  2759  
  2760  "Which of us does he mean?" gasped Huckleberry.
  2761  
  2762  "I dono--peep through the crack. Quick!"
  2763  
  2764  "No, YOU, Tom!"
  2765  
  2766  "I can't--I can't DO it, Huck!"
  2767  
  2768  "Please, Tom. There 'tis again!"
  2769  
  2770  "Oh, lordy, I'm thankful!" whispered Tom. "I know his voice. It's Bull
  2771  Harbison." *
  2772  
  2773  [* If Mr. Harbison owned a slave named Bull, Tom would have spoken of
  2774  him as "Harbison's Bull," but a son or a dog of that name was "Bull
  2775  Harbison."]
  2776  
  2777  "Oh, that's good--I tell you, Tom, I was most scared to death; I'd a
  2778  bet anything it was a STRAY dog."
  2779  
  2780  The dog howled again. The boys' hearts sank once more.
  2781  
  2782  "Oh, my! that ain't no Bull Harbison!" whispered Huckleberry. "DO, Tom!"
  2783  
  2784  Tom, quaking with fear, yielded, and put his eye to the crack. His
  2785  whisper was hardly audible when he said:
  2786  
  2787  "Oh, Huck, IT S A STRAY DOG!"
  2788  
  2789  "Quick, Tom, quick! Who does he mean?"
  2790  
  2791  "Huck, he must mean us both--we're right together."
  2792  
  2793  "Oh, Tom, I reckon we're goners. I reckon there ain't no mistake 'bout
  2794  where I'LL go to. I been so wicked."
  2795  
  2796  "Dad fetch it! This comes of playing hookey and doing everything a
  2797  feller's told NOT to do. I might a been good, like Sid, if I'd a tried
  2798  --but no, I wouldn't, of course. But if ever I get off this time, I lay
  2799  I'll just WALLER in Sunday-schools!" And Tom began to snuffle a little.
  2800  
  2801  "YOU bad!" and Huckleberry began to snuffle too. "Consound it, Tom
  2802  Sawyer, you're just old pie, 'longside o' what I am. Oh, LORDY, lordy,
  2803  lordy, I wisht I only had half your chance."
  2804  
  2805  Tom choked off and whispered:
  2806  
  2807  "Look, Hucky, look! He's got his BACK to us!"
  2808  
  2809  Hucky looked, with joy in his heart.
  2810  
  2811  "Well, he has, by jingoes! Did he before?"
  2812  
  2813  "Yes, he did. But I, like a fool, never thought. Oh, this is bully,
  2814  you know. NOW who can he mean?"
  2815  
  2816  The howling stopped. Tom pricked up his ears.
  2817  
  2818  "Sh! What's that?" he whispered.
  2819  
  2820  "Sounds like--like hogs grunting. No--it's somebody snoring, Tom."
  2821  
  2822  "That IS it! Where 'bouts is it, Huck?"
  2823  
  2824  "I bleeve it's down at 'tother end. Sounds so, anyway. Pap used to
  2825  sleep there, sometimes, 'long with the hogs, but laws bless you, he
  2826  just lifts things when HE snores. Besides, I reckon he ain't ever
  2827  coming back to this town any more."
  2828  
  2829  The spirit of adventure rose in the boys' souls once more.
  2830  
  2831  "Hucky, do you das't to go if I lead?"
  2832  
  2833  "I don't like to, much. Tom, s'pose it's Injun Joe!"
  2834  
  2835  Tom quailed. But presently the temptation rose up strong again and the
  2836  boys agreed to try, with the understanding that they would take to
  2837  their heels if the snoring stopped. So they went tiptoeing stealthily
  2838  down, the one behind the other. When they had got to within five steps
  2839  of the snorer, Tom stepped on a stick, and it broke with a sharp snap.
  2840  The man moaned, writhed a little, and his face came into the moonlight.
  2841  It was Muff Potter. The boys' hearts had stood still, and their hopes
  2842  too, when the man moved, but their fears passed away now. They tiptoed
  2843  out, through the broken weather-boarding, and stopped at a little
  2844  distance to exchange a parting word. That long, lugubrious howl rose on
  2845  the night air again! They turned and saw the strange dog standing
  2846  within a few feet of where Potter was lying, and FACING Potter, with
  2847  his nose pointing heavenward.
  2848  
  2849  "Oh, geeminy, it's HIM!" exclaimed both boys, in a breath.
  2850  
  2851  "Say, Tom--they say a stray dog come howling around Johnny Miller's
  2852  house, 'bout midnight, as much as two weeks ago; and a whippoorwill
  2853  come in and lit on the banisters and sung, the very same evening; and
  2854  there ain't anybody dead there yet."
  2855  
  2856  "Well, I know that. And suppose there ain't. Didn't Gracie Miller fall
  2857  in the kitchen fire and burn herself terrible the very next Saturday?"
  2858  
  2859  "Yes, but she ain't DEAD. And what's more, she's getting better, too."
  2860  
  2861  "All right, you wait and see. She's a goner, just as dead sure as Muff
  2862  Potter's a goner. That's what the niggers say, and they know all about
  2863  these kind of things, Huck."
  2864  
  2865  Then they separated, cogitating. When Tom crept in at his bedroom
  2866  window the night was almost spent. He undressed with excessive caution,
  2867  and fell asleep congratulating himself that nobody knew of his
  2868  escapade. He was not aware that the gently-snoring Sid was awake, and
  2869  had been so for an hour.
  2870  
  2871  When Tom awoke, Sid was dressed and gone. There was a late look in the
  2872  light, a late sense in the atmosphere. He was startled. Why had he not
  2873  been called--persecuted till he was up, as usual? The thought filled
  2874  him with bodings. Within five minutes he was dressed and down-stairs,
  2875  feeling sore and drowsy. The family were still at table, but they had
  2876  finished breakfast. There was no voice of rebuke; but there were
  2877  averted eyes; there was a silence and an air of solemnity that struck a
  2878  chill to the culprit's heart. He sat down and tried to seem gay, but it
  2879  was up-hill work; it roused no smile, no response, and he lapsed into
  2880  silence and let his heart sink down to the depths.
  2881  
  2882  After breakfast his aunt took him aside, and Tom almost brightened in
  2883  the hope that he was going to be flogged; but it was not so. His aunt
  2884  wept over him and asked him how he could go and break her old heart so;
  2885  and finally told him to go on, and ruin himself and bring her gray
  2886  hairs with sorrow to the grave, for it was no use for her to try any
  2887  more. This was worse than a thousand whippings, and Tom's heart was
  2888  sorer now than his body. He cried, he pleaded for forgiveness, promised
  2889  to reform over and over again, and then received his dismissal, feeling
  2890  that he had won but an imperfect forgiveness and established but a
  2891  feeble confidence.
  2892  
  2893  He left the presence too miserable to even feel revengeful toward Sid;
  2894  and so the latter's prompt retreat through the back gate was
  2895  unnecessary. He moped to school gloomy and sad, and took his flogging,
  2896  along with Joe Harper, for playing hookey the day before, with the air
  2897  of one whose heart was busy with heavier woes and wholly dead to
  2898  trifles. Then he betook himself to his seat, rested his elbows on his
  2899  desk and his jaws in his hands, and stared at the wall with the stony
  2900  stare of suffering that has reached the limit and can no further go.
  2901  His elbow was pressing against some hard substance. After a long time
  2902  he slowly and sadly changed his position, and took up this object with
  2903  a sigh. It was in a paper. He unrolled it. A long, lingering, colossal
  2904  sigh followed, and his heart broke. It was his brass andiron knob!
  2905  
  2906  This final feather broke the camel's back.
  2907  
  2908  
  2909  
  2910  CHAPTER XI
  2911  
  2912  CLOSE upon the hour of noon the whole village was suddenly electrified
  2913  with the ghastly news. No need of the as yet undreamed-of telegraph;
  2914  the tale flew from man to man, from group to group, from house to
  2915  house, with little less than telegraphic speed. Of course the
  2916  schoolmaster gave holiday for that afternoon; the town would have
  2917  thought strangely of him if he had not.
  2918  
  2919  A gory knife had been found close to the murdered man, and it had been
  2920  recognized by somebody as belonging to Muff Potter--so the story ran.
  2921  And it was said that a belated citizen had come upon Potter washing
  2922  himself in the "branch" about one or two o'clock in the morning, and
  2923  that Potter had at once sneaked off--suspicious circumstances,
  2924  especially the washing which was not a habit with Potter. It was also
  2925  said that the town had been ransacked for this "murderer" (the public
  2926  are not slow in the matter of sifting evidence and arriving at a
  2927  verdict), but that he could not be found. Horsemen had departed down
  2928  all the roads in every direction, and the Sheriff "was confident" that
  2929  he would be captured before night.
  2930  
  2931  All the town was drifting toward the graveyard. Tom's heartbreak
  2932  vanished and he joined the procession, not because he would not a
  2933  thousand times rather go anywhere else, but because an awful,
  2934  unaccountable fascination drew him on. Arrived at the dreadful place,
  2935  he wormed his small body through the crowd and saw the dismal
  2936  spectacle. It seemed to him an age since he was there before. Somebody
  2937  pinched his arm. He turned, and his eyes met Huckleberry's. Then both
  2938  looked elsewhere at once, and wondered if anybody had noticed anything
  2939  in their mutual glance. But everybody was talking, and intent upon the
  2940  grisly spectacle before them.
  2941  
  2942  "Poor fellow!" "Poor young fellow!" "This ought to be a lesson to
  2943  grave robbers!" "Muff Potter'll hang for this if they catch him!" This
  2944  was the drift of remark; and the minister said, "It was a judgment; His
  2945  hand is here."
  2946  
  2947  Now Tom shivered from head to heel; for his eye fell upon the stolid
  2948  face of Injun Joe. At this moment the crowd began to sway and struggle,
  2949  and voices shouted, "It's him! it's him! he's coming himself!"
  2950  
  2951  "Who? Who?" from twenty voices.
  2952  
  2953  "Muff Potter!"
  2954  
  2955  "Hallo, he's stopped!--Look out, he's turning! Don't let him get away!"
  2956  
  2957  People in the branches of the trees over Tom's head said he wasn't
  2958  trying to get away--he only looked doubtful and perplexed.
  2959  
  2960  "Infernal impudence!" said a bystander; "wanted to come and take a
  2961  quiet look at his work, I reckon--didn't expect any company."
  2962  
  2963  The crowd fell apart, now, and the Sheriff came through,
  2964  ostentatiously leading Potter by the arm. The poor fellow's face was
  2965  haggard, and his eyes showed the fear that was upon him. When he stood
  2966  before the murdered man, he shook as with a palsy, and he put his face
  2967  in his hands and burst into tears.
  2968  
  2969  "I didn't do it, friends," he sobbed; "'pon my word and honor I never
  2970  done it."
  2971  
  2972  "Who's accused you?" shouted a voice.
  2973  
  2974  This shot seemed to carry home. Potter lifted his face and looked
  2975  around him with a pathetic hopelessness in his eyes. He saw Injun Joe,
  2976  and exclaimed:
  2977  
  2978  "Oh, Injun Joe, you promised me you'd never--"
  2979  
  2980  "Is that your knife?" and it was thrust before him by the Sheriff.
  2981  
  2982  Potter would have fallen if they had not caught him and eased him to
  2983  the ground. Then he said:
  2984  
  2985  "Something told me 't if I didn't come back and get--" He shuddered;
  2986  then waved his nerveless hand with a vanquished gesture and said, "Tell
  2987  'em, Joe, tell 'em--it ain't any use any more."
  2988  
  2989  Then Huckleberry and Tom stood dumb and staring, and heard the
  2990  stony-hearted liar reel off his serene statement, they expecting every
  2991  moment that the clear sky would deliver God's lightnings upon his head,
  2992  and wondering to see how long the stroke was delayed. And when he had
  2993  finished and still stood alive and whole, their wavering impulse to
  2994  break their oath and save the poor betrayed prisoner's life faded and
  2995  vanished away, for plainly this miscreant had sold himself to Satan and
  2996  it would be fatal to meddle with the property of such a power as that.
  2997  
  2998  "Why didn't you leave? What did you want to come here for?" somebody
  2999  said.
  3000  
  3001  "I couldn't help it--I couldn't help it," Potter moaned. "I wanted to
  3002  run away, but I couldn't seem to come anywhere but here." And he fell
  3003  to sobbing again.
  3004  
  3005  Injun Joe repeated his statement, just as calmly, a few minutes
  3006  afterward on the inquest, under oath; and the boys, seeing that the
  3007  lightnings were still withheld, were confirmed in their belief that Joe
  3008  had sold himself to the devil. He was now become, to them, the most
  3009  balefully interesting object they had ever looked upon, and they could
  3010  not take their fascinated eyes from his face.
  3011  
  3012  They inwardly resolved to watch him nights, when opportunity should
  3013  offer, in the hope of getting a glimpse of his dread master.
  3014  
  3015  Injun Joe helped to raise the body of the murdered man and put it in a
  3016  wagon for removal; and it was whispered through the shuddering crowd
  3017  that the wound bled a little! The boys thought that this happy
  3018  circumstance would turn suspicion in the right direction; but they were
  3019  disappointed, for more than one villager remarked:
  3020  
  3021  "It was within three feet of Muff Potter when it done it."
  3022  
  3023  Tom's fearful secret and gnawing conscience disturbed his sleep for as
  3024  much as a week after this; and at breakfast one morning Sid said:
  3025  
  3026  "Tom, you pitch around and talk in your sleep so much that you keep me
  3027  awake half the time."
  3028  
  3029  Tom blanched and dropped his eyes.
  3030  
  3031  "It's a bad sign," said Aunt Polly, gravely. "What you got on your
  3032  mind, Tom?"
  3033  
  3034  "Nothing. Nothing 't I know of." But the boy's hand shook so that he
  3035  spilled his coffee.
  3036  
  3037  "And you do talk such stuff," Sid said. "Last night you said, 'It's
  3038  blood, it's blood, that's what it is!' You said that over and over. And
  3039  you said, 'Don't torment me so--I'll tell!' Tell WHAT? What is it
  3040  you'll tell?"
  3041  
  3042  Everything was swimming before Tom. There is no telling what might
  3043  have happened, now, but luckily the concern passed out of Aunt Polly's
  3044  face and she came to Tom's relief without knowing it. She said:
  3045  
  3046  "Sho! It's that dreadful murder. I dream about it most every night
  3047  myself. Sometimes I dream it's me that done it."
  3048  
  3049  Mary said she had been affected much the same way. Sid seemed
  3050  satisfied. Tom got out of the presence as quick as he plausibly could,
  3051  and after that he complained of toothache for a week, and tied up his
  3052  jaws every night. He never knew that Sid lay nightly watching, and
  3053  frequently slipped the bandage free and then leaned on his elbow
  3054  listening a good while at a time, and afterward slipped the bandage
  3055  back to its place again. Tom's distress of mind wore off gradually and
  3056  the toothache grew irksome and was discarded. If Sid really managed to
  3057  make anything out of Tom's disjointed mutterings, he kept it to himself.
  3058  
  3059  It seemed to Tom that his schoolmates never would get done holding
  3060  inquests on dead cats, and thus keeping his trouble present to his
  3061  mind. Sid noticed that Tom never was coroner at one of these inquiries,
  3062  though it had been his habit to take the lead in all new enterprises;
  3063  he noticed, too, that Tom never acted as a witness--and that was
  3064  strange; and Sid did not overlook the fact that Tom even showed a
  3065  marked aversion to these inquests, and always avoided them when he
  3066  could. Sid marvelled, but said nothing. However, even inquests went out
  3067  of vogue at last, and ceased to torture Tom's conscience.
  3068  
  3069  Every day or two, during this time of sorrow, Tom watched his
  3070  opportunity and went to the little grated jail-window and smuggled such
  3071  small comforts through to the "murderer" as he could get hold of. The
  3072  jail was a trifling little brick den that stood in a marsh at the edge
  3073  of the village, and no guards were afforded for it; indeed, it was
  3074  seldom occupied. These offerings greatly helped to ease Tom's
  3075  conscience.
  3076  
  3077  The villagers had a strong desire to tar-and-feather Injun Joe and
  3078  ride him on a rail, for body-snatching, but so formidable was his
  3079  character that nobody could be found who was willing to take the lead
  3080  in the matter, so it was dropped. He had been careful to begin both of
  3081  his inquest-statements with the fight, without confessing the
  3082  grave-robbery that preceded it; therefore it was deemed wisest not
  3083  to try the case in the courts at present.
  3084  
  3085  
  3086  
  3087  CHAPTER XII
  3088  
  3089  ONE of the reasons why Tom's mind had drifted away from its secret
  3090  troubles was, that it had found a new and weighty matter to interest
  3091  itself about. Becky Thatcher had stopped coming to school. Tom had
  3092  struggled with his pride a few days, and tried to "whistle her down the
  3093  wind," but failed. He began to find himself hanging around her father's
  3094  house, nights, and feeling very miserable. She was ill. What if she
  3095  should die! There was distraction in the thought. He no longer took an
  3096  interest in war, nor even in piracy. The charm of life was gone; there
  3097  was nothing but dreariness left. He put his hoop away, and his bat;
  3098  there was no joy in them any more. His aunt was concerned. She began to
  3099  try all manner of remedies on him. She was one of those people who are
  3100  infatuated with patent medicines and all new-fangled methods of
  3101  producing health or mending it. She was an inveterate experimenter in
  3102  these things. When something fresh in this line came out she was in a
  3103  fever, right away, to try it; not on herself, for she was never ailing,
  3104  but on anybody else that came handy. She was a subscriber for all the
  3105  "Health" periodicals and phrenological frauds; and the solemn ignorance
  3106  they were inflated with was breath to her nostrils. All the "rot" they
  3107  contained about ventilation, and how to go to bed, and how to get up,
  3108  and what to eat, and what to drink, and how much exercise to take, and
  3109  what frame of mind to keep one's self in, and what sort of clothing to
  3110  wear, was all gospel to her, and she never observed that her
  3111  health-journals of the current month customarily upset everything they
  3112  had recommended the month before. She was as simple-hearted and honest
  3113  as the day was long, and so she was an easy victim. She gathered
  3114  together her quack periodicals and her quack medicines, and thus armed
  3115  with death, went about on her pale horse, metaphorically speaking, with
  3116  "hell following after." But she never suspected that she was not an
  3117  angel of healing and the balm of Gilead in disguise, to the suffering
  3118  neighbors.
  3119  
  3120  The water treatment was new, now, and Tom's low condition was a
  3121  windfall to her. She had him out at daylight every morning, stood him
  3122  up in the woodshed and drowned him with a deluge of cold water; then
  3123  she scrubbed him down with a towel like a file, and so brought him to;
  3124  then she rolled him up in a wet sheet and put him away under blankets
  3125  till she sweated his soul clean and "the yellow stains of it came
  3126  through his pores"--as Tom said.
  3127  
  3128  Yet notwithstanding all this, the boy grew more and more melancholy
  3129  and pale and dejected. She added hot baths, sitz baths, shower baths,
  3130  and plunges. The boy remained as dismal as a hearse. She began to
  3131  assist the water with a slim oatmeal diet and blister-plasters. She
  3132  calculated his capacity as she would a jug's, and filled him up every
  3133  day with quack cure-alls.
  3134  
  3135  Tom had become indifferent to persecution by this time. This phase
  3136  filled the old lady's heart with consternation. This indifference must
  3137  be broken up at any cost. Now she heard of Pain-killer for the first
  3138  time. She ordered a lot at once. She tasted it and was filled with
  3139  gratitude. It was simply fire in a liquid form. She dropped the water
  3140  treatment and everything else, and pinned her faith to Pain-killer. She
  3141  gave Tom a teaspoonful and watched with the deepest anxiety for the
  3142  result. Her troubles were instantly at rest, her soul at peace again;
  3143  for the "indifference" was broken up. The boy could not have shown a
  3144  wilder, heartier interest, if she had built a fire under him.
  3145  
  3146  Tom felt that it was time to wake up; this sort of life might be
  3147  romantic enough, in his blighted condition, but it was getting to have
  3148  too little sentiment and too much distracting variety about it. So he
  3149  thought over various plans for relief, and finally hit pon that of
  3150  professing to be fond of Pain-killer. He asked for it so often that he
  3151  became a nuisance, and his aunt ended by telling him to help himself
  3152  and quit bothering her. If it had been Sid, she would have had no
  3153  misgivings to alloy her delight; but since it was Tom, she watched the
  3154  bottle clandestinely. She found that the medicine did really diminish,
  3155  but it did not occur to her that the boy was mending the health of a
  3156  crack in the sitting-room floor with it.
  3157  
  3158  One day Tom was in the act of dosing the crack when his aunt's yellow
  3159  cat came along, purring, eying the teaspoon avariciously, and begging
  3160  for a taste. Tom said:
  3161  
  3162  "Don't ask for it unless you want it, Peter."
  3163  
  3164  But Peter signified that he did want it.
  3165  
  3166  "You better make sure."
  3167  
  3168  Peter was sure.
  3169  
  3170  "Now you've asked for it, and I'll give it to you, because there ain't
  3171  anything mean about me; but if you find you don't like it, you mustn't
  3172  blame anybody but your own self."
  3173  
  3174  Peter was agreeable. So Tom pried his mouth open and poured down the
  3175  Pain-killer. Peter sprang a couple of yards in the air, and then
  3176  delivered a war-whoop and set off round and round the room, banging
  3177  against furniture, upsetting flower-pots, and making general havoc.
  3178  Next he rose on his hind feet and pranced around, in a frenzy of
  3179  enjoyment, with his head over his shoulder and his voice proclaiming
  3180  his unappeasable happiness. Then he went tearing around the house again
  3181  spreading chaos and destruction in his path. Aunt Polly entered in time
  3182  to see him throw a few double summersets, deliver a final mighty
  3183  hurrah, and sail through the open window, carrying the rest of the
  3184  flower-pots with him. The old lady stood petrified with astonishment,
  3185  peering over her glasses; Tom lay on the floor expiring with laughter.
  3186  
  3187  "Tom, what on earth ails that cat?"
  3188  
  3189  "I don't know, aunt," gasped the boy.
  3190  
  3191  "Why, I never see anything like it. What did make him act so?"
  3192  
  3193  "Deed I don't know, Aunt Polly; cats always act so when they're having
  3194  a good time."
  3195  
  3196  "They do, do they?" There was something in the tone that made Tom
  3197  apprehensive.
  3198  
  3199  "Yes'm. That is, I believe they do."
  3200  
  3201  "You DO?"
  3202  
  3203  "Yes'm."
  3204  
  3205  The old lady was bending down, Tom watching, with interest emphasized
  3206  by anxiety. Too late he divined her "drift." The handle of the telltale
  3207  teaspoon was visible under the bed-valance. Aunt Polly took it, held it
  3208  up. Tom winced, and dropped his eyes. Aunt Polly raised him by the
  3209  usual handle--his ear--and cracked his head soundly with her thimble.
  3210  
  3211  "Now, sir, what did you want to treat that poor dumb beast so, for?"
  3212  
  3213  "I done it out of pity for him--because he hadn't any aunt."
  3214  
  3215  "Hadn't any aunt!--you numskull. What has that got to do with it?"
  3216  
  3217  "Heaps. Because if he'd had one she'd a burnt him out herself! She'd a
  3218  roasted his bowels out of him 'thout any more feeling than if he was a
  3219  human!"
  3220  
  3221  Aunt Polly felt a sudden pang of remorse. This was putting the thing
  3222  in a new light; what was cruelty to a cat MIGHT be cruelty to a boy,
  3223  too. She began to soften; she felt sorry. Her eyes watered a little,
  3224  and she put her hand on Tom's head and said gently:
  3225  
  3226  "I was meaning for the best, Tom. And, Tom, it DID do you good."
  3227  
  3228  Tom looked up in her face with just a perceptible twinkle peeping
  3229  through his gravity.
  3230  
  3231  "I know you was meaning for the best, aunty, and so was I with Peter.
  3232  It done HIM good, too. I never see him get around so since--"
  3233  
  3234  "Oh, go 'long with you, Tom, before you aggravate me again. And you
  3235  try and see if you can't be a good boy, for once, and you needn't take
  3236  any more medicine."
  3237  
  3238  Tom reached school ahead of time. It was noticed that this strange
  3239  thing had been occurring every day latterly. And now, as usual of late,
  3240  he hung about the gate of the schoolyard instead of playing with his
  3241  comrades. He was sick, he said, and he looked it. He tried to seem to
  3242  be looking everywhere but whither he really was looking--down the road.
  3243  Presently Jeff Thatcher hove in sight, and Tom's face lighted; he gazed
  3244  a moment, and then turned sorrowfully away. When Jeff arrived, Tom
  3245  accosted him; and "led up" warily to opportunities for remark about
  3246  Becky, but the giddy lad never could see the bait. Tom watched and
  3247  watched, hoping whenever a frisking frock came in sight, and hating the
  3248  owner of it as soon as he saw she was not the right one. At last frocks
  3249  ceased to appear, and he dropped hopelessly into the dumps; he entered
  3250  the empty schoolhouse and sat down to suffer. Then one more frock
  3251  passed in at the gate, and Tom's heart gave a great bound. The next
  3252  instant he was out, and "going on" like an Indian; yelling, laughing,
  3253  chasing boys, jumping over the fence at risk of life and limb, throwing
  3254  handsprings, standing on his head--doing all the heroic things he could
  3255  conceive of, and keeping a furtive eye out, all the while, to see if
  3256  Becky Thatcher was noticing. But she seemed to be unconscious of it
  3257  all; she never looked. Could it be possible that she was not aware that
  3258  he was there? He carried his exploits to her immediate vicinity; came
  3259  war-whooping around, snatched a boy's cap, hurled it to the roof of the
  3260  schoolhouse, broke through a group of boys, tumbling them in every
  3261  direction, and fell sprawling, himself, under Becky's nose, almost
  3262  upsetting her--and she turned, with her nose in the air, and he heard
  3263  her say: "Mf! some people think they're mighty smart--always showing
  3264  off!"
  3265  
  3266  Tom's cheeks burned. He gathered himself up and sneaked off, crushed
  3267  and crestfallen.
  3268  
  3269  
  3270  
  3271  CHAPTER XIII
  3272  
  3273  TOM'S mind was made up now. He was gloomy and desperate. He was a
  3274  forsaken, friendless boy, he said; nobody loved him; when they found
  3275  out what they had driven him to, perhaps they would be sorry; he had
  3276  tried to do right and get along, but they would not let him; since
  3277  nothing would do them but to be rid of him, let it be so; and let them
  3278  blame HIM for the consequences--why shouldn't they? What right had the
  3279  friendless to complain? Yes, they had forced him to it at last: he
  3280  would lead a life of crime. There was no choice.
  3281  
  3282  By this time he was far down Meadow Lane, and the bell for school to
  3283  "take up" tinkled faintly upon his ear. He sobbed, now, to think he
  3284  should never, never hear that old familiar sound any more--it was very
  3285  hard, but it was forced on him; since he was driven out into the cold
  3286  world, he must submit--but he forgave them. Then the sobs came thick
  3287  and fast.
  3288  
  3289  Just at this point he met his soul's sworn comrade, Joe Harper
  3290  --hard-eyed, and with evidently a great and dismal purpose in his heart.
  3291  Plainly here were "two souls with but a single thought." Tom, wiping
  3292  his eyes with his sleeve, began to blubber out something about a
  3293  resolution to escape from hard usage and lack of sympathy at home by
  3294  roaming abroad into the great world never to return; and ended by
  3295  hoping that Joe would not forget him.
  3296  
  3297  But it transpired that this was a request which Joe had just been
  3298  going to make of Tom, and had come to hunt him up for that purpose. His
  3299  mother had whipped him for drinking some cream which he had never
  3300  tasted and knew nothing about; it was plain that she was tired of him
  3301  and wished him to go; if she felt that way, there was nothing for him
  3302  to do but succumb; he hoped she would be happy, and never regret having
  3303  driven her poor boy out into the unfeeling world to suffer and die.
  3304  
  3305  As the two boys walked sorrowing along, they made a new compact to
  3306  stand by each other and be brothers and never separate till death
  3307  relieved them of their troubles. Then they began to lay their plans.
  3308  Joe was for being a hermit, and living on crusts in a remote cave, and
  3309  dying, some time, of cold and want and grief; but after listening to
  3310  Tom, he conceded that there were some conspicuous advantages about a
  3311  life of crime, and so he consented to be a pirate.
  3312  
  3313  Three miles below St. Petersburg, at a point where the Mississippi
  3314  River was a trifle over a mile wide, there was a long, narrow, wooded
  3315  island, with a shallow bar at the head of it, and this offered well as
  3316  a rendezvous. It was not inhabited; it lay far over toward the further
  3317  shore, abreast a dense and almost wholly unpeopled forest. So Jackson's
  3318  Island was chosen. Who were to be the subjects of their piracies was a
  3319  matter that did not occur to them. Then they hunted up Huckleberry
  3320  Finn, and he joined them promptly, for all careers were one to him; he
  3321  was indifferent. They presently separated to meet at a lonely spot on
  3322  the river-bank two miles above the village at the favorite hour--which
  3323  was midnight. There was a small log raft there which they meant to
  3324  capture. Each would bring hooks and lines, and such provision as he
  3325  could steal in the most dark and mysterious way--as became outlaws. And
  3326  before the afternoon was done, they had all managed to enjoy the sweet
  3327  glory of spreading the fact that pretty soon the town would "hear
  3328  something." All who got this vague hint were cautioned to "be mum and
  3329  wait."
  3330  
  3331  About midnight Tom arrived with a boiled ham and a few trifles,
  3332  and stopped in a dense undergrowth on a small bluff overlooking the
  3333  meeting-place. It was starlight, and very still. The mighty river lay
  3334  like an ocean at rest. Tom listened a moment, but no sound disturbed the
  3335  quiet. Then he gave a low, distinct whistle. It was answered from under
  3336  the bluff. Tom whistled twice more; these signals were answered in the
  3337  same way. Then a guarded voice said:
  3338  
  3339  "Who goes there?"
  3340  
  3341  "Tom Sawyer, the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main. Name your names."
  3342  
  3343  "Huck Finn the Red-Handed, and Joe Harper the Terror of the Seas." Tom
  3344  had furnished these titles, from his favorite literature.
  3345  
  3346  "'Tis well. Give the countersign."
  3347  
  3348  Two hoarse whispers delivered the same awful word simultaneously to
  3349  the brooding night:
  3350  
  3351  "BLOOD!"
  3352  
  3353  Then Tom tumbled his ham over the bluff and let himself down after it,
  3354  tearing both skin and clothes to some extent in the effort. There was
  3355  an easy, comfortable path along the shore under the bluff, but it
  3356  lacked the advantages of difficulty and danger so valued by a pirate.
  3357  
  3358  The Terror of the Seas had brought a side of bacon, and had about worn
  3359  himself out with getting it there. Finn the Red-Handed had stolen a
  3360  skillet and a quantity of half-cured leaf tobacco, and had also brought
  3361  a few corn-cobs to make pipes with. But none of the pirates smoked or
  3362  "chewed" but himself. The Black Avenger of the Spanish Main said it
  3363  would never do to start without some fire. That was a wise thought;
  3364  matches were hardly known there in that day. They saw a fire
  3365  smouldering upon a great raft a hundred yards above, and they went
  3366  stealthily thither and helped themselves to a chunk. They made an
  3367  imposing adventure of it, saying, "Hist!" every now and then, and
  3368  suddenly halting with finger on lip; moving with hands on imaginary
  3369  dagger-hilts; and giving orders in dismal whispers that if "the foe"
  3370  stirred, to "let him have it to the hilt," because "dead men tell no
  3371  tales." They knew well enough that the raftsmen were all down at the
  3372  village laying in stores or having a spree, but still that was no
  3373  excuse for their conducting this thing in an unpiratical way.
  3374  
  3375  They shoved off, presently, Tom in command, Huck at the after oar and
  3376  Joe at the forward. Tom stood amidships, gloomy-browed, and with folded
  3377  arms, and gave his orders in a low, stern whisper:
  3378  
  3379  "Luff, and bring her to the wind!"
  3380  
  3381  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3382  
  3383  "Steady, steady-y-y-y!"
  3384  
  3385  "Steady it is, sir!"
  3386  
  3387  "Let her go off a point!"
  3388  
  3389  "Point it is, sir!"
  3390  
  3391  As the boys steadily and monotonously drove the raft toward mid-stream
  3392  it was no doubt understood that these orders were given only for
  3393  "style," and were not intended to mean anything in particular.
  3394  
  3395  "What sail's she carrying?"
  3396  
  3397  "Courses, tops'ls, and flying-jib, sir."
  3398  
  3399  "Send the r'yals up! Lay out aloft, there, half a dozen of ye
  3400  --foretopmaststuns'l! Lively, now!"
  3401  
  3402  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3403  
  3404  "Shake out that maintogalans'l! Sheets and braces! NOW my hearties!"
  3405  
  3406  "Aye-aye, sir!"
  3407  
  3408  "Hellum-a-lee--hard a port! Stand by to meet her when she comes! Port,
  3409  port! NOW, men! With a will! Stead-y-y-y!"
  3410  
  3411  "Steady it is, sir!"
  3412  
  3413  The raft drew beyond the middle of the river; the boys pointed her
  3414  head right, and then lay on their oars. The river was not high, so
  3415  there was not more than a two or three mile current. Hardly a word was
  3416  said during the next three-quarters of an hour. Now the raft was
  3417  passing before the distant town. Two or three glimmering lights showed
  3418  where it lay, peacefully sleeping, beyond the vague vast sweep of
  3419  star-gemmed water, unconscious of the tremendous event that was happening.
  3420  The Black Avenger stood still with folded arms, "looking his last" upon
  3421  the scene of his former joys and his later sufferings, and wishing
  3422  "she" could see him now, abroad on the wild sea, facing peril and death
  3423  with dauntless heart, going to his doom with a grim smile on his lips.
  3424  It was but a small strain on his imagination to remove Jackson's Island
  3425  beyond eyeshot of the village, and so he "looked his last" with a
  3426  broken and satisfied heart. The other pirates were looking their last,
  3427  too; and they all looked so long that they came near letting the
  3428  current drift them out of the range of the island. But they discovered
  3429  the danger in time, and made shift to avert it. About two o'clock in
  3430  the morning the raft grounded on the bar two hundred yards above the
  3431  head of the island, and they waded back and forth until they had landed
  3432  their freight. Part of the little raft's belongings consisted of an old
  3433  sail, and this they spread over a nook in the bushes for a tent to
  3434  shelter their provisions; but they themselves would sleep in the open
  3435  air in good weather, as became outlaws.
  3436  
  3437  They built a fire against the side of a great log twenty or thirty
  3438  steps within the sombre depths of the forest, and then cooked some
  3439  bacon in the frying-pan for supper, and used up half of the corn "pone"
  3440  stock they had brought. It seemed glorious sport to be feasting in that
  3441  wild, free way in the virgin forest of an unexplored and uninhabited
  3442  island, far from the haunts of men, and they said they never would
  3443  return to civilization. The climbing fire lit up their faces and threw
  3444  its ruddy glare upon the pillared tree-trunks of their forest temple,
  3445  and upon the varnished foliage and festooning vines.
  3446  
  3447  When the last crisp slice of bacon was gone, and the last allowance of
  3448  corn pone devoured, the boys stretched themselves out on the grass,
  3449  filled with contentment. They could have found a cooler place, but they
  3450  would not deny themselves such a romantic feature as the roasting
  3451  camp-fire.
  3452  
  3453  "AIN'T it gay?" said Joe.
  3454  
  3455  "It's NUTS!" said Tom. "What would the boys say if they could see us?"
  3456  
  3457  "Say? Well, they'd just die to be here--hey, Hucky!"
  3458  
  3459  "I reckon so," said Huckleberry; "anyways, I'm suited. I don't want
  3460  nothing better'n this. I don't ever get enough to eat, gen'ally--and
  3461  here they can't come and pick at a feller and bullyrag him so."
  3462  
  3463  "It's just the life for me," said Tom. "You don't have to get up,
  3464  mornings, and you don't have to go to school, and wash, and all that
  3465  blame foolishness. You see a pirate don't have to do ANYTHING, Joe,
  3466  when he's ashore, but a hermit HE has to be praying considerable, and
  3467  then he don't have any fun, anyway, all by himself that way."
  3468  
  3469  "Oh yes, that's so," said Joe, "but I hadn't thought much about it,
  3470  you know. I'd a good deal rather be a pirate, now that I've tried it."
  3471  
  3472  "You see," said Tom, "people don't go much on hermits, nowadays, like
  3473  they used to in old times, but a pirate's always respected. And a
  3474  hermit's got to sleep on the hardest place he can find, and put
  3475  sackcloth and ashes on his head, and stand out in the rain, and--"
  3476  
  3477  "What does he put sackcloth and ashes on his head for?" inquired Huck.
  3478  
  3479  "I dono. But they've GOT to do it. Hermits always do. You'd have to do
  3480  that if you was a hermit."
  3481  
  3482  "Dern'd if I would," said Huck.
  3483  
  3484  "Well, what would you do?"
  3485  
  3486  "I dono. But I wouldn't do that."
  3487  
  3488  "Why, Huck, you'd HAVE to. How'd you get around it?"
  3489  
  3490  "Why, I just wouldn't stand it. I'd run away."
  3491  
  3492  "Run away! Well, you WOULD be a nice old slouch of a hermit. You'd be
  3493  a disgrace."
  3494  
  3495  The Red-Handed made no response, being better employed. He had
  3496  finished gouging out a cob, and now he fitted a weed stem to it, loaded
  3497  it with tobacco, and was pressing a coal to the charge and blowing a
  3498  cloud of fragrant smoke--he was in the full bloom of luxurious
  3499  contentment. The other pirates envied him this majestic vice, and
  3500  secretly resolved to acquire it shortly. Presently Huck said:
  3501  
  3502  "What does pirates have to do?"
  3503  
  3504  Tom said:
  3505  
  3506  "Oh, they have just a bully time--take ships and burn them, and get
  3507  the money and bury it in awful places in their island where there's
  3508  ghosts and things to watch it, and kill everybody in the ships--make
  3509  'em walk a plank."
  3510  
  3511  "And they carry the women to the island," said Joe; "they don't kill
  3512  the women."
  3513  
  3514  "No," assented Tom, "they don't kill the women--they're too noble. And
  3515  the women's always beautiful, too.
  3516  
  3517  "And don't they wear the bulliest clothes! Oh no! All gold and silver
  3518  and di'monds," said Joe, with enthusiasm.
  3519  
  3520  "Who?" said Huck.
  3521  
  3522  "Why, the pirates."
  3523  
  3524  Huck scanned his own clothing forlornly.
  3525  
  3526  "I reckon I ain't dressed fitten for a pirate," said he, with a
  3527  regretful pathos in his voice; "but I ain't got none but these."
  3528  
  3529  But the other boys told him the fine clothes would come fast enough,
  3530  after they should have begun their adventures. They made him understand
  3531  that his poor rags would do to begin with, though it was customary for
  3532  wealthy pirates to start with a proper wardrobe.
  3533  
  3534  Gradually their talk died out and drowsiness began to steal upon the
  3535  eyelids of the little waifs. The pipe dropped from the fingers of the
  3536  Red-Handed, and he slept the sleep of the conscience-free and the
  3537  weary. The Terror of the Seas and the Black Avenger of the Spanish Main
  3538  had more difficulty in getting to sleep. They said their prayers
  3539  inwardly, and lying down, since there was nobody there with authority
  3540  to make them kneel and recite aloud; in truth, they had a mind not to
  3541  say them at all, but they were afraid to proceed to such lengths as
  3542  that, lest they might call down a sudden and special thunderbolt from
  3543  heaven. Then at once they reached and hovered upon the imminent verge
  3544  of sleep--but an intruder came, now, that would not "down." It was
  3545  conscience. They began to feel a vague fear that they had been doing
  3546  wrong to run away; and next they thought of the stolen meat, and then
  3547  the real torture came. They tried to argue it away by reminding
  3548  conscience that they had purloined sweetmeats and apples scores of
  3549  times; but conscience was not to be appeased by such thin
  3550  plausibilities; it seemed to them, in the end, that there was no
  3551  getting around the stubborn fact that taking sweetmeats was only
  3552  "hooking," while taking bacon and hams and such valuables was plain
  3553  simple stealing--and there was a command against that in the Bible. So
  3554  they inwardly resolved that so long as they remained in the business,
  3555  their piracies should not again be sullied with the crime of stealing.
  3556  Then conscience granted a truce, and these curiously inconsistent
  3557  pirates fell peacefully to sleep.
  3558  
  3559  
  3560  
  3561  CHAPTER XIV
  3562  
  3563  WHEN Tom awoke in the morning, he wondered where he was. He sat up and
  3564  rubbed his eyes and looked around. Then he comprehended. It was the
  3565  cool gray dawn, and there was a delicious sense of repose and peace in
  3566  the deep pervading calm and silence of the woods. Not a leaf stirred;
  3567  not a sound obtruded upon great Nature's meditation. Beaded dewdrops
  3568  stood upon the leaves and grasses. A white layer of ashes covered the
  3569  fire, and a thin blue breath of smoke rose straight into the air. Joe
  3570  and Huck still slept.
  3571  
  3572  Now, far away in the woods a bird called; another answered; presently
  3573  the hammering of a woodpecker was heard. Gradually the cool dim gray of
  3574  the morning whitened, and as gradually sounds multiplied and life
  3575  manifested itself. The marvel of Nature shaking off sleep and going to
  3576  work unfolded itself to the musing boy. A little green worm came
  3577  crawling over a dewy leaf, lifting two-thirds of his body into the air
  3578  from time to time and "sniffing around," then proceeding again--for he
  3579  was measuring, Tom said; and when the worm approached him, of its own
  3580  accord, he sat as still as a stone, with his hopes rising and falling,
  3581  by turns, as the creature still came toward him or seemed inclined to
  3582  go elsewhere; and when at last it considered a painful moment with its
  3583  curved body in the air and then came decisively down upon Tom's leg and
  3584  began a journey over him, his whole heart was glad--for that meant that
  3585  he was going to have a new suit of clothes--without the shadow of a
  3586  doubt a gaudy piratical uniform. Now a procession of ants appeared,
  3587  from nowhere in particular, and went about their labors; one struggled
  3588  manfully by with a dead spider five times as big as itself in its arms,
  3589  and lugged it straight up a tree-trunk. A brown spotted lady-bug
  3590  climbed the dizzy height of a grass blade, and Tom bent down close to
  3591  it and said, "Lady-bug, lady-bug, fly away home, your house is on fire,
  3592  your children's alone," and she took wing and went off to see about it
  3593  --which did not surprise the boy, for he knew of old that this insect was
  3594  credulous about conflagrations, and he had practised upon its
  3595  simplicity more than once. A tumblebug came next, heaving sturdily at
  3596  its ball, and Tom touched the creature, to see it shut its legs against
  3597  its body and pretend to be dead. The birds were fairly rioting by this
  3598  time. A catbird, the Northern mocker, lit in a tree over Tom's head,
  3599  and trilled out her imitations of her neighbors in a rapture of
  3600  enjoyment; then a shrill jay swept down, a flash of blue flame, and
  3601  stopped on a twig almost within the boy's reach, cocked his head to one
  3602  side and eyed the strangers with a consuming curiosity; a gray squirrel
  3603  and a big fellow of the "fox" kind came skurrying along, sitting up at
  3604  intervals to inspect and chatter at the boys, for the wild things had
  3605  probably never seen a human being before and scarcely knew whether to
  3606  be afraid or not. All Nature was wide awake and stirring, now; long
  3607  lances of sunlight pierced down through the dense foliage far and near,
  3608  and a few butterflies came fluttering upon the scene.
  3609  
  3610  Tom stirred up the other pirates and they all clattered away with a
  3611  shout, and in a minute or two were stripped and chasing after and
  3612  tumbling over each other in the shallow limpid water of the white
  3613  sandbar. They felt no longing for the little village sleeping in the
  3614  distance beyond the majestic waste of water. A vagrant current or a
  3615  slight rise in the river had carried off their raft, but this only
  3616  gratified them, since its going was something like burning the bridge
  3617  between them and civilization.
  3618  
  3619  They came back to camp wonderfully refreshed, glad-hearted, and
  3620  ravenous; and they soon had the camp-fire blazing up again. Huck found
  3621  a spring of clear cold water close by, and the boys made cups of broad
  3622  oak or hickory leaves, and felt that water, sweetened with such a
  3623  wildwood charm as that, would be a good enough substitute for coffee.
  3624  While Joe was slicing bacon for breakfast, Tom and Huck asked him to
  3625  hold on a minute; they stepped to a promising nook in the river-bank
  3626  and threw in their lines; almost immediately they had reward. Joe had
  3627  not had time to get impatient before they were back again with some
  3628  handsome bass, a couple of sun-perch and a small catfish--provisions
  3629  enough for quite a family. They fried the fish with the bacon, and were
  3630  astonished; for no fish had ever seemed so delicious before. They did
  3631  not know that the quicker a fresh-water fish is on the fire after he is
  3632  caught the better he is; and they reflected little upon what a sauce
  3633  open-air sleeping, open-air exercise, bathing, and a large ingredient
  3634  of hunger make, too.
  3635  
  3636  They lay around in the shade, after breakfast, while Huck had a smoke,
  3637  and then went off through the woods on an exploring expedition. They
  3638  tramped gayly along, over decaying logs, through tangled underbrush,
  3639  among solemn monarchs of the forest, hung from their crowns to the
  3640  ground with a drooping regalia of grape-vines. Now and then they came
  3641  upon snug nooks carpeted with grass and jeweled with flowers.
  3642  
  3643  They found plenty of things to be delighted with, but nothing to be
  3644  astonished at. They discovered that the island was about three miles
  3645  long and a quarter of a mile wide, and that the shore it lay closest to
  3646  was only separated from it by a narrow channel hardly two hundred yards
  3647  wide. They took a swim about every hour, so it was close upon the
  3648  middle of the afternoon when they got back to camp. They were too
  3649  hungry to stop to fish, but they fared sumptuously upon cold ham, and
  3650  then threw themselves down in the shade to talk. But the talk soon
  3651  began to drag, and then died. The stillness, the solemnity that brooded
  3652  in the woods, and the sense of loneliness, began to tell upon the
  3653  spirits of the boys. They fell to thinking. A sort of undefined longing
  3654  crept upon them. This took dim shape, presently--it was budding
  3655  homesickness. Even Finn the Red-Handed was dreaming of his doorsteps
  3656  and empty hogsheads. But they were all ashamed of their weakness, and
  3657  none was brave enough to speak his thought.
  3658  
  3659  For some time, now, the boys had been dully conscious of a peculiar
  3660  sound in the distance, just as one sometimes is of the ticking of a
  3661  clock which he takes no distinct note of. But now this mysterious sound
  3662  became more pronounced, and forced a recognition. The boys started,
  3663  glanced at each other, and then each assumed a listening attitude.
  3664  There was a long silence, profound and unbroken; then a deep, sullen
  3665  boom came floating down out of the distance.
  3666  
  3667  "What is it!" exclaimed Joe, under his breath.
  3668  
  3669  "I wonder," said Tom in a whisper.
  3670  
  3671  "'Tain't thunder," said Huckleberry, in an awed tone, "becuz thunder--"
  3672  
  3673  "Hark!" said Tom. "Listen--don't talk."
  3674  
  3675  They waited a time that seemed an age, and then the same muffled boom
  3676  troubled the solemn hush.
  3677  
  3678  "Let's go and see."
  3679  
  3680  They sprang to their feet and hurried to the shore toward the town.
  3681  They parted the bushes on the bank and peered out over the water. The
  3682  little steam ferryboat was about a mile below the village, drifting
  3683  with the current. Her broad deck seemed crowded with people. There were
  3684  a great many skiffs rowing about or floating with the stream in the
  3685  neighborhood of the ferryboat, but the boys could not determine what
  3686  the men in them were doing. Presently a great jet of white smoke burst
  3687  from the ferryboat's side, and as it expanded and rose in a lazy cloud,
  3688  that same dull throb of sound was borne to the listeners again.
  3689  
  3690  "I know now!" exclaimed Tom; "somebody's drownded!"
  3691  
  3692  "That's it!" said Huck; "they done that last summer, when Bill Turner
  3693  got drownded; they shoot a cannon over the water, and that makes him
  3694  come up to the top. Yes, and they take loaves of bread and put
  3695  quicksilver in 'em and set 'em afloat, and wherever there's anybody
  3696  that's drownded, they'll float right there and stop."
  3697  
  3698  "Yes, I've heard about that," said Joe. "I wonder what makes the bread
  3699  do that."
  3700  
  3701  "Oh, it ain't the bread, so much," said Tom; "I reckon it's mostly
  3702  what they SAY over it before they start it out."
  3703  
  3704  "But they don't say anything over it," said Huck. "I've seen 'em and
  3705  they don't."
  3706  
  3707  "Well, that's funny," said Tom. "But maybe they say it to themselves.
  3708  Of COURSE they do. Anybody might know that."
  3709  
  3710  The other boys agreed that there was reason in what Tom said, because
  3711  an ignorant lump of bread, uninstructed by an incantation, could not be
  3712  expected to act very intelligently when set upon an errand of such
  3713  gravity.
  3714  
  3715  "By jings, I wish I was over there, now," said Joe.
  3716  
  3717  "I do too" said Huck "I'd give heaps to know who it is."
  3718  
  3719  The boys still listened and watched. Presently a revealing thought
  3720  flashed through Tom's mind, and he exclaimed:
  3721  
  3722  "Boys, I know who's drownded--it's us!"
  3723  
  3724  They felt like heroes in an instant. Here was a gorgeous triumph; they
  3725  were missed; they were mourned; hearts were breaking on their account;
  3726  tears were being shed; accusing memories of unkindness to these poor
  3727  lost lads were rising up, and unavailing regrets and remorse were being
  3728  indulged; and best of all, the departed were the talk of the whole
  3729  town, and the envy of all the boys, as far as this dazzling notoriety
  3730  was concerned. This was fine. It was worth while to be a pirate, after
  3731  all.
  3732  
  3733  As twilight drew on, the ferryboat went back to her accustomed
  3734  business and the skiffs disappeared. The pirates returned to camp. They
  3735  were jubilant with vanity over their new grandeur and the illustrious
  3736  trouble they were making. They caught fish, cooked supper and ate it,
  3737  and then fell to guessing at what the village was thinking and saying
  3738  about them; and the pictures they drew of the public distress on their
  3739  account were gratifying to look upon--from their point of view. But
  3740  when the shadows of night closed them in, they gradually ceased to
  3741  talk, and sat gazing into the fire, with their minds evidently
  3742  wandering elsewhere. The excitement was gone, now, and Tom and Joe
  3743  could not keep back thoughts of certain persons at home who were not
  3744  enjoying this fine frolic as much as they were. Misgivings came; they
  3745  grew troubled and unhappy; a sigh or two escaped, unawares. By and by
  3746  Joe timidly ventured upon a roundabout "feeler" as to how the others
  3747  might look upon a return to civilization--not right now, but--
  3748  
  3749  Tom withered him with derision! Huck, being uncommitted as yet, joined
  3750  in with Tom, and the waverer quickly "explained," and was glad to get
  3751  out of the scrape with as little taint of chicken-hearted homesickness
  3752  clinging to his garments as he could. Mutiny was effectually laid to
  3753  rest for the moment.
  3754  
  3755  As the night deepened, Huck began to nod, and presently to snore. Joe
  3756  followed next. Tom lay upon his elbow motionless, for some time,
  3757  watching the two intently. At last he got up cautiously, on his knees,
  3758  and went searching among the grass and the flickering reflections flung
  3759  by the camp-fire. He picked up and inspected several large
  3760  semi-cylinders of the thin white bark of a sycamore, and finally chose
  3761  two which seemed to suit him. Then he knelt by the fire and painfully
  3762  wrote something upon each of these with his "red keel"; one he rolled up
  3763  and put in his jacket pocket, and the other he put in Joe's hat and
  3764  removed it to a little distance from the owner. And he also put into the
  3765  hat certain schoolboy treasures of almost inestimable value--among them
  3766  a lump of chalk, an India-rubber ball, three fishhooks, and one of that
  3767  kind of marbles known as a "sure 'nough crystal." Then he tiptoed his
  3768  way cautiously among the trees till he felt that he was out of hearing,
  3769  and straightway broke into a keen run in the direction of the sandbar.
  3770  
  3771  
  3772  
  3773  CHAPTER XV
  3774  
  3775  A FEW minutes later Tom was in the shoal water of the bar, wading
  3776  toward the Illinois shore. Before the depth reached his middle he was
  3777  half-way over; the current would permit no more wading, now, so he
  3778  struck out confidently to swim the remaining hundred yards. He swam
  3779  quartering upstream, but still was swept downward rather faster than he
  3780  had expected. However, he reached the shore finally, and drifted along
  3781  till he found a low place and drew himself out. He put his hand on his
  3782  jacket pocket, found his piece of bark safe, and then struck through
  3783  the woods, following the shore, with streaming garments. Shortly before
  3784  ten o'clock he came out into an open place opposite the village, and
  3785  saw the ferryboat lying in the shadow of the trees and the high bank.
  3786  Everything was quiet under the blinking stars. He crept down the bank,
  3787  watching with all his eyes, slipped into the water, swam three or four
  3788  strokes and climbed into the skiff that did "yawl" duty at the boat's
  3789  stern. He laid himself down under the thwarts and waited, panting.
  3790  
  3791  Presently the cracked bell tapped and a voice gave the order to "cast
  3792  off." A minute or two later the skiff's head was standing high up,
  3793  against the boat's swell, and the voyage was begun. Tom felt happy in
  3794  his success, for he knew it was the boat's last trip for the night. At
  3795  the end of a long twelve or fifteen minutes the wheels stopped, and Tom
  3796  slipped overboard and swam ashore in the dusk, landing fifty yards
  3797  downstream, out of danger of possible stragglers.
  3798  
  3799  He flew along unfrequented alleys, and shortly found himself at his
  3800  aunt's back fence. He climbed over, approached the "ell," and looked in
  3801  at the sitting-room window, for a light was burning there. There sat
  3802  Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, and Joe Harper's mother, grouped together,
  3803  talking. They were by the bed, and the bed was between them and the
  3804  door. Tom went to the door and began to softly lift the latch; then he
  3805  pressed gently and the door yielded a crack; he continued pushing
  3806  cautiously, and quaking every time it creaked, till he judged he might
  3807  squeeze through on his knees; so he put his head through and began,
  3808  warily.
  3809  
  3810  "What makes the candle blow so?" said Aunt Polly. Tom hurried up.
  3811  "Why, that door's open, I believe. Why, of course it is. No end of
  3812  strange things now. Go 'long and shut it, Sid."
  3813  
  3814  Tom disappeared under the bed just in time. He lay and "breathed"
  3815  himself for a time, and then crept to where he could almost touch his
  3816  aunt's foot.
  3817  
  3818  "But as I was saying," said Aunt Polly, "he warn't BAD, so to say
  3819  --only mischEEvous. Only just giddy, and harum-scarum, you know. He
  3820  warn't any more responsible than a colt. HE never meant any harm, and
  3821  he was the best-hearted boy that ever was"--and she began to cry.
  3822  
  3823  "It was just so with my Joe--always full of his devilment, and up to
  3824  every kind of mischief, but he was just as unselfish and kind as he
  3825  could be--and laws bless me, to think I went and whipped him for taking
  3826  that cream, never once recollecting that I throwed it out myself
  3827  because it was sour, and I never to see him again in this world, never,
  3828  never, never, poor abused boy!" And Mrs. Harper sobbed as if her heart
  3829  would break.
  3830  
  3831  "I hope Tom's better off where he is," said Sid, "but if he'd been
  3832  better in some ways--"
  3833  
  3834  "SID!" Tom felt the glare of the old lady's eye, though he could not
  3835  see it. "Not a word against my Tom, now that he's gone! God'll take
  3836  care of HIM--never you trouble YOURself, sir! Oh, Mrs. Harper, I don't
  3837  know how to give him up! I don't know how to give him up! He was such a
  3838  comfort to me, although he tormented my old heart out of me, 'most."
  3839  
  3840  "The Lord giveth and the Lord hath taken away--Blessed be the name of
  3841  the Lord! But it's so hard--Oh, it's so hard! Only last Saturday my
  3842  Joe busted a firecracker right under my nose and I knocked him
  3843  sprawling. Little did I know then, how soon--Oh, if it was to do over
  3844  again I'd hug him and bless him for it."
  3845  
  3846  "Yes, yes, yes, I know just how you feel, Mrs. Harper, I know just
  3847  exactly how you feel. No longer ago than yesterday noon, my Tom took
  3848  and filled the cat full of Pain-killer, and I did think the cretur
  3849  would tear the house down. And God forgive me, I cracked Tom's head
  3850  with my thimble, poor boy, poor dead boy. But he's out of all his
  3851  troubles now. And the last words I ever heard him say was to reproach--"
  3852  
  3853  But this memory was too much for the old lady, and she broke entirely
  3854  down. Tom was snuffling, now, himself--and more in pity of himself than
  3855  anybody else. He could hear Mary crying, and putting in a kindly word
  3856  for him from time to time. He began to have a nobler opinion of himself
  3857  than ever before. Still, he was sufficiently touched by his aunt's
  3858  grief to long to rush out from under the bed and overwhelm her with
  3859  joy--and the theatrical gorgeousness of the thing appealed strongly to
  3860  his nature, too, but he resisted and lay still.
  3861  
  3862  He went on listening, and gathered by odds and ends that it was
  3863  conjectured at first that the boys had got drowned while taking a swim;
  3864  then the small raft had been missed; next, certain boys said the
  3865  missing lads had promised that the village should "hear something"
  3866  soon; the wise-heads had "put this and that together" and decided that
  3867  the lads had gone off on that raft and would turn up at the next town
  3868  below, presently; but toward noon the raft had been found, lodged
  3869  against the Missouri shore some five or six miles below the village
  3870  --and then hope perished; they must be drowned, else hunger would have
  3871  driven them home by nightfall if not sooner. It was believed that the
  3872  search for the bodies had been a fruitless effort merely because the
  3873  drowning must have occurred in mid-channel, since the boys, being good
  3874  swimmers, would otherwise have escaped to shore. This was Wednesday
  3875  night. If the bodies continued missing until Sunday, all hope would be
  3876  given over, and the funerals would be preached on that morning. Tom
  3877  shuddered.
  3878  
  3879  Mrs. Harper gave a sobbing good-night and turned to go. Then with a
  3880  mutual impulse the two bereaved women flung themselves into each
  3881  other's arms and had a good, consoling cry, and then parted. Aunt Polly
  3882  was tender far beyond her wont, in her good-night to Sid and Mary. Sid
  3883  snuffled a bit and Mary went off crying with all her heart.
  3884  
  3885  Aunt Polly knelt down and prayed for Tom so touchingly, so
  3886  appealingly, and with such measureless love in her words and her old
  3887  trembling voice, that he was weltering in tears again, long before she
  3888  was through.
  3889  
  3890  He had to keep still long after she went to bed, for she kept making
  3891  broken-hearted ejaculations from time to time, tossing unrestfully, and
  3892  turning over. But at last she was still, only moaning a little in her
  3893  sleep. Now the boy stole out, rose gradually by the bedside, shaded the
  3894  candle-light with his hand, and stood regarding her. His heart was full
  3895  of pity for her. He took out his sycamore scroll and placed it by the
  3896  candle. But something occurred to him, and he lingered considering. His
  3897  face lighted with a happy solution of his thought; he put the bark
  3898  hastily in his pocket. Then he bent over and kissed the faded lips, and
  3899  straightway made his stealthy exit, latching the door behind him.
  3900  
  3901  He threaded his way back to the ferry landing, found nobody at large
  3902  there, and walked boldly on board the boat, for he knew she was
  3903  tenantless except that there was a watchman, who always turned in and
  3904  slept like a graven image. He untied the skiff at the stern, slipped
  3905  into it, and was soon rowing cautiously upstream. When he had pulled a
  3906  mile above the village, he started quartering across and bent himself
  3907  stoutly to his work. He hit the landing on the other side neatly, for
  3908  this was a familiar bit of work to him. He was moved to capture the
  3909  skiff, arguing that it might be considered a ship and therefore
  3910  legitimate prey for a pirate, but he knew a thorough search would be
  3911  made for it and that might end in revelations. So he stepped ashore and
  3912  entered the woods.
  3913  
  3914  He sat down and took a long rest, torturing himself meanwhile to keep
  3915  awake, and then started warily down the home-stretch. The night was far
  3916  spent. It was broad daylight before he found himself fairly abreast the
  3917  island bar. He rested again until the sun was well up and gilding the
  3918  great river with its splendor, and then he plunged into the stream. A
  3919  little later he paused, dripping, upon the threshold of the camp, and
  3920  heard Joe say:
  3921  
  3922  "No, Tom's true-blue, Huck, and he'll come back. He won't desert. He
  3923  knows that would be a disgrace to a pirate, and Tom's too proud for
  3924  that sort of thing. He's up to something or other. Now I wonder what?"
  3925  
  3926  "Well, the things is ours, anyway, ain't they?"
  3927  
  3928  "Pretty near, but not yet, Huck. The writing says they are if he ain't
  3929  back here to breakfast."
  3930  
  3931  "Which he is!" exclaimed Tom, with fine dramatic effect, stepping
  3932  grandly into camp.
  3933  
  3934  A sumptuous breakfast of bacon and fish was shortly provided, and as
  3935  the boys set to work upon it, Tom recounted (and adorned) his
  3936  adventures. They were a vain and boastful company of heroes when the
  3937  tale was done. Then Tom hid himself away in a shady nook to sleep till
  3938  noon, and the other pirates got ready to fish and explore.
  3939  
  3940  
  3941  
  3942  CHAPTER XVI
  3943  
  3944  AFTER dinner all the gang turned out to hunt for turtle eggs on the
  3945  bar. They went about poking sticks into the sand, and when they found a
  3946  soft place they went down on their knees and dug with their hands.
  3947  Sometimes they would take fifty or sixty eggs out of one hole. They
  3948  were perfectly round white things a trifle smaller than an English
  3949  walnut. They had a famous fried-egg feast that night, and another on
  3950  Friday morning.
  3951  
  3952  After breakfast they went whooping and prancing out on the bar, and
  3953  chased each other round and round, shedding clothes as they went, until
  3954  they were naked, and then continued the frolic far away up the shoal
  3955  water of the bar, against the stiff current, which latter tripped their
  3956  legs from under them from time to time and greatly increased the fun.
  3957  And now and then they stooped in a group and splashed water in each
  3958  other's faces with their palms, gradually approaching each other, with
  3959  averted faces to avoid the strangling sprays, and finally gripping and
  3960  struggling till the best man ducked his neighbor, and then they all
  3961  went under in a tangle of white legs and arms and came up blowing,
  3962  sputtering, laughing, and gasping for breath at one and the same time.
  3963  
  3964  When they were well exhausted, they would run out and sprawl on the
  3965  dry, hot sand, and lie there and cover themselves up with it, and by
  3966  and by break for the water again and go through the original
  3967  performance once more. Finally it occurred to them that their naked
  3968  skin represented flesh-colored "tights" very fairly; so they drew a
  3969  ring in the sand and had a circus--with three clowns in it, for none
  3970  would yield this proudest post to his neighbor.
  3971  
  3972  Next they got their marbles and played "knucks" and "ring-taw" and
  3973  "keeps" till that amusement grew stale. Then Joe and Huck had another
  3974  swim, but Tom would not venture, because he found that in kicking off
  3975  his trousers he had kicked his string of rattlesnake rattles off his
  3976  ankle, and he wondered how he had escaped cramp so long without the
  3977  protection of this mysterious charm. He did not venture again until he
  3978  had found it, and by that time the other boys were tired and ready to
  3979  rest. They gradually wandered apart, dropped into the "dumps," and fell
  3980  to gazing longingly across the wide river to where the village lay
  3981  drowsing in the sun. Tom found himself writing "BECKY" in the sand with
  3982  his big toe; he scratched it out, and was angry with himself for his
  3983  weakness. But he wrote it again, nevertheless; he could not help it. He
  3984  erased it once more and then took himself out of temptation by driving
  3985  the other boys together and joining them.
  3986  
  3987  But Joe's spirits had gone down almost beyond resurrection. He was so
  3988  homesick that he could hardly endure the misery of it. The tears lay
  3989  very near the surface. Huck was melancholy, too. Tom was downhearted,
  3990  but tried hard not to show it. He had a secret which he was not ready
  3991  to tell, yet, but if this mutinous depression was not broken up soon,
  3992  he would have to bring it out. He said, with a great show of
  3993  cheerfulness:
  3994  
  3995  "I bet there's been pirates on this island before, boys. We'll explore
  3996  it again. They've hid treasures here somewhere. How'd you feel to light
  3997  on a rotten chest full of gold and silver--hey?"
  3998  
  3999  But it roused only faint enthusiasm, which faded out, with no reply.
  4000  Tom tried one or two other seductions; but they failed, too. It was
  4001  discouraging work. Joe sat poking up the sand with a stick and looking
  4002  very gloomy. Finally he said:
  4003  
  4004  "Oh, boys, let's give it up. I want to go home. It's so lonesome."
  4005  
  4006  "Oh no, Joe, you'll feel better by and by," said Tom. "Just think of
  4007  the fishing that's here."
  4008  
  4009  "I don't care for fishing. I want to go home."
  4010  
  4011  "But, Joe, there ain't such another swimming-place anywhere."
  4012  
  4013  "Swimming's no good. I don't seem to care for it, somehow, when there
  4014  ain't anybody to say I sha'n't go in. I mean to go home."
  4015  
  4016  "Oh, shucks! Baby! You want to see your mother, I reckon."
  4017  
  4018  "Yes, I DO want to see my mother--and you would, too, if you had one.
  4019  I ain't any more baby than you are." And Joe snuffled a little.
  4020  
  4021  "Well, we'll let the cry-baby go home to his mother, won't we, Huck?
  4022  Poor thing--does it want to see its mother? And so it shall. You like
  4023  it here, don't you, Huck? We'll stay, won't we?"
  4024  
  4025  Huck said, "Y-e-s"--without any heart in it.
  4026  
  4027  "I'll never speak to you again as long as I live," said Joe, rising.
  4028  "There now!" And he moved moodily away and began to dress himself.
  4029  
  4030  "Who cares!" said Tom. "Nobody wants you to. Go 'long home and get
  4031  laughed at. Oh, you're a nice pirate. Huck and me ain't cry-babies.
  4032  We'll stay, won't we, Huck? Let him go if he wants to. I reckon we can
  4033  get along without him, per'aps."
  4034  
  4035  But Tom was uneasy, nevertheless, and was alarmed to see Joe go
  4036  sullenly on with his dressing. And then it was discomforting to see
  4037  Huck eying Joe's preparations so wistfully, and keeping up such an
  4038  ominous silence. Presently, without a parting word, Joe began to wade
  4039  off toward the Illinois shore. Tom's heart began to sink. He glanced at
  4040  Huck. Huck could not bear the look, and dropped his eyes. Then he said:
  4041  
  4042  "I want to go, too, Tom. It was getting so lonesome anyway, and now
  4043  it'll be worse. Let's us go, too, Tom."
  4044  
  4045  "I won't! You can all go, if you want to. I mean to stay."
  4046  
  4047  "Tom, I better go."
  4048  
  4049  "Well, go 'long--who's hendering you."
  4050  
  4051  Huck began to pick up his scattered clothes. He said:
  4052  
  4053  "Tom, I wisht you'd come, too. Now you think it over. We'll wait for
  4054  you when we get to shore."
  4055  
  4056  "Well, you'll wait a blame long time, that's all."
  4057  
  4058  Huck started sorrowfully away, and Tom stood looking after him, with a
  4059  strong desire tugging at his heart to yield his pride and go along too.
  4060  He hoped the boys would stop, but they still waded slowly on. It
  4061  suddenly dawned on Tom that it was become very lonely and still. He
  4062  made one final struggle with his pride, and then darted after his
  4063  comrades, yelling:
  4064  
  4065  "Wait! Wait! I want to tell you something!"
  4066  
  4067  They presently stopped and turned around. When he got to where they
  4068  were, he began unfolding his secret, and they listened moodily till at
  4069  last they saw the "point" he was driving at, and then they set up a
  4070  war-whoop of applause and said it was "splendid!" and said if he had
  4071  told them at first, they wouldn't have started away. He made a plausible
  4072  excuse; but his real reason had been the fear that not even the secret
  4073  would keep them with him any very great length of time, and so he had
  4074  meant to hold it in reserve as a last seduction.
  4075  
  4076  The lads came gayly back and went at their sports again with a will,
  4077  chattering all the time about Tom's stupendous plan and admiring the
  4078  genius of it. After a dainty egg and fish dinner, Tom said he wanted to
  4079  learn to smoke, now. Joe caught at the idea and said he would like to
  4080  try, too. So Huck made pipes and filled them. These novices had never
  4081  smoked anything before but cigars made of grape-vine, and they "bit"
  4082  the tongue, and were not considered manly anyway.
  4083  
  4084  Now they stretched themselves out on their elbows and began to puff,
  4085  charily, and with slender confidence. The smoke had an unpleasant
  4086  taste, and they gagged a little, but Tom said:
  4087  
  4088  "Why, it's just as easy! If I'd a knowed this was all, I'd a learnt
  4089  long ago."
  4090  
  4091  "So would I," said Joe. "It's just nothing."
  4092  
  4093  "Why, many a time I've looked at people smoking, and thought well I
  4094  wish I could do that; but I never thought I could," said Tom.
  4095  
  4096  "That's just the way with me, hain't it, Huck? You've heard me talk
  4097  just that way--haven't you, Huck? I'll leave it to Huck if I haven't."
  4098  
  4099  "Yes--heaps of times," said Huck.
  4100  
  4101  "Well, I have too," said Tom; "oh, hundreds of times. Once down by the
  4102  slaughter-house. Don't you remember, Huck? Bob Tanner was there, and
  4103  Johnny Miller, and Jeff Thatcher, when I said it. Don't you remember,
  4104  Huck, 'bout me saying that?"
  4105  
  4106  "Yes, that's so," said Huck. "That was the day after I lost a white
  4107  alley. No, 'twas the day before."
  4108  
  4109  "There--I told you so," said Tom. "Huck recollects it."
  4110  
  4111  "I bleeve I could smoke this pipe all day," said Joe. "I don't feel
  4112  sick."
  4113  
  4114  "Neither do I," said Tom. "I could smoke it all day. But I bet you
  4115  Jeff Thatcher couldn't."
  4116  
  4117  "Jeff Thatcher! Why, he'd keel over just with two draws. Just let him
  4118  try it once. HE'D see!"
  4119  
  4120  "I bet he would. And Johnny Miller--I wish could see Johnny Miller
  4121  tackle it once."
  4122  
  4123  "Oh, don't I!" said Joe. "Why, I bet you Johnny Miller couldn't any
  4124  more do this than nothing. Just one little snifter would fetch HIM."
  4125  
  4126  "'Deed it would, Joe. Say--I wish the boys could see us now."
  4127  
  4128  "So do I."
  4129  
  4130  "Say--boys, don't say anything about it, and some time when they're
  4131  around, I'll come up to you and say, 'Joe, got a pipe? I want a smoke.'
  4132  And you'll say, kind of careless like, as if it warn't anything, you'll
  4133  say, 'Yes, I got my OLD pipe, and another one, but my tobacker ain't
  4134  very good.' And I'll say, 'Oh, that's all right, if it's STRONG
  4135  enough.' And then you'll out with the pipes, and we'll light up just as
  4136  ca'm, and then just see 'em look!"
  4137  
  4138  "By jings, that'll be gay, Tom! I wish it was NOW!"
  4139  
  4140  "So do I! And when we tell 'em we learned when we was off pirating,
  4141  won't they wish they'd been along?"
  4142  
  4143  "Oh, I reckon not! I'll just BET they will!"
  4144  
  4145  So the talk ran on. But presently it began to flag a trifle, and grow
  4146  disjointed. The silences widened; the expectoration marvellously
  4147  increased. Every pore inside the boys' cheeks became a spouting
  4148  fountain; they could scarcely bail out the cellars under their tongues
  4149  fast enough to prevent an inundation; little overflowings down their
  4150  throats occurred in spite of all they could do, and sudden retchings
  4151  followed every time. Both boys were looking very pale and miserable,
  4152  now. Joe's pipe dropped from his nerveless fingers. Tom's followed.
  4153  Both fountains were going furiously and both pumps bailing with might
  4154  and main. Joe said feebly:
  4155  
  4156  "I've lost my knife. I reckon I better go and find it."
  4157  
  4158  Tom said, with quivering lips and halting utterance:
  4159  
  4160  "I'll help you. You go over that way and I'll hunt around by the
  4161  spring. No, you needn't come, Huck--we can find it."
  4162  
  4163  So Huck sat down again, and waited an hour. Then he found it lonesome,
  4164  and went to find his comrades. They were wide apart in the woods, both
  4165  very pale, both fast asleep. But something informed him that if they
  4166  had had any trouble they had got rid of it.
  4167  
  4168  They were not talkative at supper that night. They had a humble look,
  4169  and when Huck prepared his pipe after the meal and was going to prepare
  4170  theirs, they said no, they were not feeling very well--something they
  4171  ate at dinner had disagreed with them.
  4172  
  4173  About midnight Joe awoke, and called the boys. There was a brooding
  4174  oppressiveness in the air that seemed to bode something. The boys
  4175  huddled themselves together and sought the friendly companionship of
  4176  the fire, though the dull dead heat of the breathless atmosphere was
  4177  stifling. They sat still, intent and waiting. The solemn hush
  4178  continued. Beyond the light of the fire everything was swallowed up in
  4179  the blackness of darkness. Presently there came a quivering glow that
  4180  vaguely revealed the foliage for a moment and then vanished. By and by
  4181  another came, a little stronger. Then another. Then a faint moan came
  4182  sighing through the branches of the forest and the boys felt a fleeting
  4183  breath upon their cheeks, and shuddered with the fancy that the Spirit
  4184  of the Night had gone by. There was a pause. Now a weird flash turned
  4185  night into day and showed every little grass-blade, separate and
  4186  distinct, that grew about their feet. And it showed three white,
  4187  startled faces, too. A deep peal of thunder went rolling and tumbling
  4188  down the heavens and lost itself in sullen rumblings in the distance. A
  4189  sweep of chilly air passed by, rustling all the leaves and snowing the
  4190  flaky ashes broadcast about the fire. Another fierce glare lit up the
  4191  forest and an instant crash followed that seemed to rend the tree-tops
  4192  right over the boys' heads. They clung together in terror, in the thick
  4193  gloom that followed. A few big rain-drops fell pattering upon the
  4194  leaves.
  4195  
  4196  "Quick! boys, go for the tent!" exclaimed Tom.
  4197  
  4198  They sprang away, stumbling over roots and among vines in the dark, no
  4199  two plunging in the same direction. A furious blast roared through the
  4200  trees, making everything sing as it went. One blinding flash after
  4201  another came, and peal on peal of deafening thunder. And now a
  4202  drenching rain poured down and the rising hurricane drove it in sheets
  4203  along the ground. The boys cried out to each other, but the roaring
  4204  wind and the booming thunder-blasts drowned their voices utterly.
  4205  However, one by one they straggled in at last and took shelter under
  4206  the tent, cold, scared, and streaming with water; but to have company
  4207  in misery seemed something to be grateful for. They could not talk, the
  4208  old sail flapped so furiously, even if the other noises would have
  4209  allowed them. The tempest rose higher and higher, and presently the
  4210  sail tore loose from its fastenings and went winging away on the blast.
  4211  The boys seized each others' hands and fled, with many tumblings and
  4212  bruises, to the shelter of a great oak that stood upon the river-bank.
  4213  Now the battle was at its highest. Under the ceaseless conflagration of
  4214  lightning that flamed in the skies, everything below stood out in
  4215  clean-cut and shadowless distinctness: the bending trees, the billowy
  4216  river, white with foam, the driving spray of spume-flakes, the dim
  4217  outlines of the high bluffs on the other side, glimpsed through the
  4218  drifting cloud-rack and the slanting veil of rain. Every little while
  4219  some giant tree yielded the fight and fell crashing through the younger
  4220  growth; and the unflagging thunder-peals came now in ear-splitting
  4221  explosive bursts, keen and sharp, and unspeakably appalling. The storm
  4222  culminated in one matchless effort that seemed likely to tear the island
  4223  to pieces, burn it up, drown it to the tree-tops, blow it away, and
  4224  deafen every creature in it, all at one and the same moment. It was a
  4225  wild night for homeless young heads to be out in.
  4226  
  4227  But at last the battle was done, and the forces retired with weaker
  4228  and weaker threatenings and grumblings, and peace resumed her sway. The
  4229  boys went back to camp, a good deal awed; but they found there was
  4230  still something to be thankful for, because the great sycamore, the
  4231  shelter of their beds, was a ruin, now, blasted by the lightnings, and
  4232  they were not under it when the catastrophe happened.
  4233  
  4234  Everything in camp was drenched, the camp-fire as well; for they were
  4235  but heedless lads, like their generation, and had made no provision
  4236  against rain. Here was matter for dismay, for they were soaked through
  4237  and chilled. They were eloquent in their distress; but they presently
  4238  discovered that the fire had eaten so far up under the great log it had
  4239  been built against (where it curved upward and separated itself from
  4240  the ground), that a handbreadth or so of it had escaped wetting; so
  4241  they patiently wrought until, with shreds and bark gathered from the
  4242  under sides of sheltered logs, they coaxed the fire to burn again. Then
  4243  they piled on great dead boughs till they had a roaring furnace, and
  4244  were glad-hearted once more. They dried their boiled ham and had a
  4245  feast, and after that they sat by the fire and expanded and glorified
  4246  their midnight adventure until morning, for there was not a dry spot to
  4247  sleep on, anywhere around.
  4248  
  4249  As the sun began to steal in upon the boys, drowsiness came over them,
  4250  and they went out on the sandbar and lay down to sleep. They got
  4251  scorched out by and by, and drearily set about getting breakfast. After
  4252  the meal they felt rusty, and stiff-jointed, and a little homesick once
  4253  more. Tom saw the signs, and fell to cheering up the pirates as well as
  4254  he could. But they cared nothing for marbles, or circus, or swimming,
  4255  or anything. He reminded them of the imposing secret, and raised a ray
  4256  of cheer. While it lasted, he got them interested in a new device. This
  4257  was to knock off being pirates, for a while, and be Indians for a
  4258  change. They were attracted by this idea; so it was not long before
  4259  they were stripped, and striped from head to heel with black mud, like
  4260  so many zebras--all of them chiefs, of course--and then they went
  4261  tearing through the woods to attack an English settlement.
  4262  
  4263  By and by they separated into three hostile tribes, and darted upon
  4264  each other from ambush with dreadful war-whoops, and killed and scalped
  4265  each other by thousands. It was a gory day. Consequently it was an
  4266  extremely satisfactory one.
  4267  
  4268  They assembled in camp toward supper-time, hungry and happy; but now a
  4269  difficulty arose--hostile Indians could not break the bread of
  4270  hospitality together without first making peace, and this was a simple
  4271  impossibility without smoking a pipe of peace. There was no other
  4272  process that ever they had heard of. Two of the savages almost wished
  4273  they had remained pirates. However, there was no other way; so with
  4274  such show of cheerfulness as they could muster they called for the pipe
  4275  and took their whiff as it passed, in due form.
  4276  
  4277  And behold, they were glad they had gone into savagery, for they had
  4278  gained something; they found that they could now smoke a little without
  4279  having to go and hunt for a lost knife; they did not get sick enough to
  4280  be seriously uncomfortable. They were not likely to fool away this high
  4281  promise for lack of effort. No, they practised cautiously, after
  4282  supper, with right fair success, and so they spent a jubilant evening.
  4283  They were prouder and happier in their new acquirement than they would
  4284  have been in the scalping and skinning of the Six Nations. We will
  4285  leave them to smoke and chatter and brag, since we have no further use
  4286  for them at present.
  4287  
  4288  
  4289  
  4290  CHAPTER XVII
  4291  
  4292  BUT there was no hilarity in the little town that same tranquil
  4293  Saturday afternoon. The Harpers, and Aunt Polly's family, were being
  4294  put into mourning, with great grief and many tears. An unusual quiet
  4295  possessed the village, although it was ordinarily quiet enough, in all
  4296  conscience. The villagers conducted their concerns with an absent air,
  4297  and talked little; but they sighed often. The Saturday holiday seemed a
  4298  burden to the children. They had no heart in their sports, and
  4299  gradually gave them up.
  4300  
  4301  In the afternoon Becky Thatcher found herself moping about the
  4302  deserted schoolhouse yard, and feeling very melancholy. But she found
  4303  nothing there to comfort her. She soliloquized:
  4304  
  4305  "Oh, if I only had a brass andiron-knob again! But I haven't got
  4306  anything now to remember him by." And she choked back a little sob.
  4307  
  4308  Presently she stopped, and said to herself:
  4309  
  4310  "It was right here. Oh, if it was to do over again, I wouldn't say
  4311  that--I wouldn't say it for the whole world. But he's gone now; I'll
  4312  never, never, never see him any more."
  4313  
  4314  This thought broke her down, and she wandered away, with tears rolling
  4315  down her cheeks. Then quite a group of boys and girls--playmates of
  4316  Tom's and Joe's--came by, and stood looking over the paling fence and
  4317  talking in reverent tones of how Tom did so-and-so the last time they
  4318  saw him, and how Joe said this and that small trifle (pregnant with
  4319  awful prophecy, as they could easily see now!)--and each speaker
  4320  pointed out the exact spot where the lost lads stood at the time, and
  4321  then added something like "and I was a-standing just so--just as I am
  4322  now, and as if you was him--I was as close as that--and he smiled, just
  4323  this way--and then something seemed to go all over me, like--awful, you
  4324  know--and I never thought what it meant, of course, but I can see now!"
  4325  
  4326  Then there was a dispute about who saw the dead boys last in life, and
  4327  many claimed that dismal distinction, and offered evidences, more or
  4328  less tampered with by the witness; and when it was ultimately decided
  4329  who DID see the departed last, and exchanged the last words with them,
  4330  the lucky parties took upon themselves a sort of sacred importance, and
  4331  were gaped at and envied by all the rest. One poor chap, who had no
  4332  other grandeur to offer, said with tolerably manifest pride in the
  4333  remembrance:
  4334  
  4335  "Well, Tom Sawyer he licked me once."
  4336  
  4337  But that bid for glory was a failure. Most of the boys could say that,
  4338  and so that cheapened the distinction too much. The group loitered
  4339  away, still recalling memories of the lost heroes, in awed voices.
  4340  
  4341  When the Sunday-school hour was finished, the next morning, the bell
  4342  began to toll, instead of ringing in the usual way. It was a very still
  4343  Sabbath, and the mournful sound seemed in keeping with the musing hush
  4344  that lay upon nature. The villagers began to gather, loitering a moment
  4345  in the vestibule to converse in whispers about the sad event. But there
  4346  was no whispering in the house; only the funereal rustling of dresses
  4347  as the women gathered to their seats disturbed the silence there. None
  4348  could remember when the little church had been so full before. There
  4349  was finally a waiting pause, an expectant dumbness, and then Aunt Polly
  4350  entered, followed by Sid and Mary, and they by the Harper family, all
  4351  in deep black, and the whole congregation, the old minister as well,
  4352  rose reverently and stood until the mourners were seated in the front
  4353  pew. There was another communing silence, broken at intervals by
  4354  muffled sobs, and then the minister spread his hands abroad and prayed.
  4355  A moving hymn was sung, and the text followed: "I am the Resurrection
  4356  and the Life."
  4357  
  4358  As the service proceeded, the clergyman drew such pictures of the
  4359  graces, the winning ways, and the rare promise of the lost lads that
  4360  every soul there, thinking he recognized these pictures, felt a pang in
  4361  remembering that he had persistently blinded himself to them always
  4362  before, and had as persistently seen only faults and flaws in the poor
  4363  boys. The minister related many a touching incident in the lives of the
  4364  departed, too, which illustrated their sweet, generous natures, and the
  4365  people could easily see, now, how noble and beautiful those episodes
  4366  were, and remembered with grief that at the time they occurred they had
  4367  seemed rank rascalities, well deserving of the cowhide. The
  4368  congregation became more and more moved, as the pathetic tale went on,
  4369  till at last the whole company broke down and joined the weeping
  4370  mourners in a chorus of anguished sobs, the preacher himself giving way
  4371  to his feelings, and crying in the pulpit.
  4372  
  4373  There was a rustle in the gallery, which nobody noticed; a moment
  4374  later the church door creaked; the minister raised his streaming eyes
  4375  above his handkerchief, and stood transfixed! First one and then
  4376  another pair of eyes followed the minister's, and then almost with one
  4377  impulse the congregation rose and stared while the three dead boys came
  4378  marching up the aisle, Tom in the lead, Joe next, and Huck, a ruin of
  4379  drooping rags, sneaking sheepishly in the rear! They had been hid in
  4380  the unused gallery listening to their own funeral sermon!
  4381  
  4382  Aunt Polly, Mary, and the Harpers threw themselves upon their restored
  4383  ones, smothered them with kisses and poured out thanksgivings, while
  4384  poor Huck stood abashed and uncomfortable, not knowing exactly what to
  4385  do or where to hide from so many unwelcoming eyes. He wavered, and
  4386  started to slink away, but Tom seized him and said:
  4387  
  4388  "Aunt Polly, it ain't fair. Somebody's got to be glad to see Huck."
  4389  
  4390  "And so they shall. I'm glad to see him, poor motherless thing!" And
  4391  the loving attentions Aunt Polly lavished upon him were the one thing
  4392  capable of making him more uncomfortable than he was before.
  4393  
  4394  Suddenly the minister shouted at the top of his voice: "Praise God
  4395  from whom all blessings flow--SING!--and put your hearts in it!"
  4396  
  4397  And they did. Old Hundred swelled up with a triumphant burst, and
  4398  while it shook the rafters Tom Sawyer the Pirate looked around upon the
  4399  envying juveniles about him and confessed in his heart that this was
  4400  the proudest moment of his life.
  4401  
  4402  As the "sold" congregation trooped out they said they would almost be
  4403  willing to be made ridiculous again to hear Old Hundred sung like that
  4404  once more.
  4405  
  4406  Tom got more cuffs and kisses that day--according to Aunt Polly's
  4407  varying moods--than he had earned before in a year; and he hardly knew
  4408  which expressed the most gratefulness to God and affection for himself.
  4409  
  4410  
  4411  
  4412  CHAPTER XVIII
  4413  
  4414  THAT was Tom's great secret--the scheme to return home with his
  4415  brother pirates and attend their own funerals. They had paddled over to
  4416  the Missouri shore on a log, at dusk on Saturday, landing five or six
  4417  miles below the village; they had slept in the woods at the edge of the
  4418  town till nearly daylight, and had then crept through back lanes and
  4419  alleys and finished their sleep in the gallery of the church among a
  4420  chaos of invalided benches.
  4421  
  4422  At breakfast, Monday morning, Aunt Polly and Mary were very loving to
  4423  Tom, and very attentive to his wants. There was an unusual amount of
  4424  talk. In the course of it Aunt Polly said:
  4425  
  4426  "Well, I don't say it wasn't a fine joke, Tom, to keep everybody
  4427  suffering 'most a week so you boys had a good time, but it is a pity
  4428  you could be so hard-hearted as to let me suffer so. If you could come
  4429  over on a log to go to your funeral, you could have come over and give
  4430  me a hint some way that you warn't dead, but only run off."
  4431  
  4432  "Yes, you could have done that, Tom," said Mary; "and I believe you
  4433  would if you had thought of it."
  4434  
  4435  "Would you, Tom?" said Aunt Polly, her face lighting wistfully. "Say,
  4436  now, would you, if you'd thought of it?"
  4437  
  4438  "I--well, I don't know. 'Twould 'a' spoiled everything."
  4439  
  4440  "Tom, I hoped you loved me that much," said Aunt Polly, with a grieved
  4441  tone that discomforted the boy. "It would have been something if you'd
  4442  cared enough to THINK of it, even if you didn't DO it."
  4443  
  4444  "Now, auntie, that ain't any harm," pleaded Mary; "it's only Tom's
  4445  giddy way--he is always in such a rush that he never thinks of
  4446  anything."
  4447  
  4448  "More's the pity. Sid would have thought. And Sid would have come and
  4449  DONE it, too. Tom, you'll look back, some day, when it's too late, and
  4450  wish you'd cared a little more for me when it would have cost you so
  4451  little."
  4452  
  4453  "Now, auntie, you know I do care for you," said Tom.
  4454  
  4455  "I'd know it better if you acted more like it."
  4456  
  4457  "I wish now I'd thought," said Tom, with a repentant tone; "but I
  4458  dreamt about you, anyway. That's something, ain't it?"
  4459  
  4460  "It ain't much--a cat does that much--but it's better than nothing.
  4461  What did you dream?"
  4462  
  4463  "Why, Wednesday night I dreamt that you was sitting over there by the
  4464  bed, and Sid was sitting by the woodbox, and Mary next to him."
  4465  
  4466  "Well, so we did. So we always do. I'm glad your dreams could take
  4467  even that much trouble about us."
  4468  
  4469  "And I dreamt that Joe Harper's mother was here."
  4470  
  4471  "Why, she was here! Did you dream any more?"
  4472  
  4473  "Oh, lots. But it's so dim, now."
  4474  
  4475  "Well, try to recollect--can't you?"
  4476  
  4477  "Somehow it seems to me that the wind--the wind blowed the--the--"
  4478  
  4479  "Try harder, Tom! The wind did blow something. Come!"
  4480  
  4481  Tom pressed his fingers on his forehead an anxious minute, and then
  4482  said:
  4483  
  4484  "I've got it now! I've got it now! It blowed the candle!"
  4485  
  4486  "Mercy on us! Go on, Tom--go on!"
  4487  
  4488  "And it seems to me that you said, 'Why, I believe that that door--'"
  4489  
  4490  "Go ON, Tom!"
  4491  
  4492  "Just let me study a moment--just a moment. Oh, yes--you said you
  4493  believed the door was open."
  4494  
  4495  "As I'm sitting here, I did! Didn't I, Mary! Go on!"
  4496  
  4497  "And then--and then--well I won't be certain, but it seems like as if
  4498  you made Sid go and--and--"
  4499  
  4500  "Well? Well? What did I make him do, Tom? What did I make him do?"
  4501  
  4502  "You made him--you--Oh, you made him shut it."
  4503  
  4504  "Well, for the land's sake! I never heard the beat of that in all my
  4505  days! Don't tell ME there ain't anything in dreams, any more. Sereny
  4506  Harper shall know of this before I'm an hour older. I'd like to see her
  4507  get around THIS with her rubbage 'bout superstition. Go on, Tom!"
  4508  
  4509  "Oh, it's all getting just as bright as day, now. Next you said I
  4510  warn't BAD, only mischeevous and harum-scarum, and not any more
  4511  responsible than--than--I think it was a colt, or something."
  4512  
  4513  "And so it was! Well, goodness gracious! Go on, Tom!"
  4514  
  4515  "And then you began to cry."
  4516  
  4517  "So I did. So I did. Not the first time, neither. And then--"
  4518  
  4519  "Then Mrs. Harper she began to cry, and said Joe was just the same,
  4520  and she wished she hadn't whipped him for taking cream when she'd
  4521  throwed it out her own self--"
  4522  
  4523  "Tom! The sperrit was upon you! You was a prophesying--that's what you
  4524  was doing! Land alive, go on, Tom!"
  4525  
  4526  "Then Sid he said--he said--"
  4527  
  4528  "I don't think I said anything," said Sid.
  4529  
  4530  "Yes you did, Sid," said Mary.
  4531  
  4532  "Shut your heads and let Tom go on! What did he say, Tom?"
  4533  
  4534  "He said--I THINK he said he hoped I was better off where I was gone
  4535  to, but if I'd been better sometimes--"
  4536  
  4537  "THERE, d'you hear that! It was his very words!"
  4538  
  4539  "And you shut him up sharp."
  4540  
  4541  "I lay I did! There must 'a' been an angel there. There WAS an angel
  4542  there, somewheres!"
  4543  
  4544  "And Mrs. Harper told about Joe scaring her with a firecracker, and
  4545  you told about Peter and the Painkiller--"
  4546  
  4547  "Just as true as I live!"
  4548  
  4549  "And then there was a whole lot of talk 'bout dragging the river for
  4550  us, and 'bout having the funeral Sunday, and then you and old Miss
  4551  Harper hugged and cried, and she went."
  4552  
  4553  "It happened just so! It happened just so, as sure as I'm a-sitting in
  4554  these very tracks. Tom, you couldn't told it more like if you'd 'a'
  4555  seen it! And then what? Go on, Tom!"
  4556  
  4557  "Then I thought you prayed for me--and I could see you and hear every
  4558  word you said. And you went to bed, and I was so sorry that I took and
  4559  wrote on a piece of sycamore bark, 'We ain't dead--we are only off
  4560  being pirates,' and put it on the table by the candle; and then you
  4561  looked so good, laying there asleep, that I thought I went and leaned
  4562  over and kissed you on the lips."
  4563  
  4564  "Did you, Tom, DID you! I just forgive you everything for that!" And
  4565  she seized the boy in a crushing embrace that made him feel like the
  4566  guiltiest of villains.
  4567  
  4568  "It was very kind, even though it was only a--dream," Sid soliloquized
  4569  just audibly.
  4570  
  4571  "Shut up, Sid! A body does just the same in a dream as he'd do if he
  4572  was awake. Here's a big Milum apple I've been saving for you, Tom, if
  4573  you was ever found again--now go 'long to school. I'm thankful to the
  4574  good God and Father of us all I've got you back, that's long-suffering
  4575  and merciful to them that believe on Him and keep His word, though
  4576  goodness knows I'm unworthy of it, but if only the worthy ones got His
  4577  blessings and had His hand to help them over the rough places, there's
  4578  few enough would smile here or ever enter into His rest when the long
  4579  night comes. Go 'long Sid, Mary, Tom--take yourselves off--you've
  4580  hendered me long enough."
  4581  
  4582  The children left for school, and the old lady to call on Mrs. Harper
  4583  and vanquish her realism with Tom's marvellous dream. Sid had better
  4584  judgment than to utter the thought that was in his mind as he left the
  4585  house. It was this: "Pretty thin--as long a dream as that, without any
  4586  mistakes in it!"
  4587  
  4588  What a hero Tom was become, now! He did not go skipping and prancing,
  4589  but moved with a dignified swagger as became a pirate who felt that the
  4590  public eye was on him. And indeed it was; he tried not to seem to see
  4591  the looks or hear the remarks as he passed along, but they were food
  4592  and drink to him. Smaller boys than himself flocked at his heels, as
  4593  proud to be seen with him, and tolerated by him, as if he had been the
  4594  drummer at the head of a procession or the elephant leading a menagerie
  4595  into town. Boys of his own size pretended not to know he had been away
  4596  at all; but they were consuming with envy, nevertheless. They would
  4597  have given anything to have that swarthy suntanned skin of his, and his
  4598  glittering notoriety; and Tom would not have parted with either for a
  4599  circus.
  4600  
  4601  At school the children made so much of him and of Joe, and delivered
  4602  such eloquent admiration from their eyes, that the two heroes were not
  4603  long in becoming insufferably "stuck-up." They began to tell their
  4604  adventures to hungry listeners--but they only began; it was not a thing
  4605  likely to have an end, with imaginations like theirs to furnish
  4606  material. And finally, when they got out their pipes and went serenely
  4607  puffing around, the very summit of glory was reached.
  4608  
  4609  Tom decided that he could be independent of Becky Thatcher now. Glory
  4610  was sufficient. He would live for glory. Now that he was distinguished,
  4611  maybe she would be wanting to "make up." Well, let her--she should see
  4612  that he could be as indifferent as some other people. Presently she
  4613  arrived. Tom pretended not to see her. He moved away and joined a group
  4614  of boys and girls and began to talk. Soon he observed that she was
  4615  tripping gayly back and forth with flushed face and dancing eyes,
  4616  pretending to be busy chasing schoolmates, and screaming with laughter
  4617  when she made a capture; but he noticed that she always made her
  4618  captures in his vicinity, and that she seemed to cast a conscious eye
  4619  in his direction at such times, too. It gratified all the vicious
  4620  vanity that was in him; and so, instead of winning him, it only "set
  4621  him up" the more and made him the more diligent to avoid betraying that
  4622  he knew she was about. Presently she gave over skylarking, and moved
  4623  irresolutely about, sighing once or twice and glancing furtively and
  4624  wistfully toward Tom. Then she observed that now Tom was talking more
  4625  particularly to Amy Lawrence than to any one else. She felt a sharp
  4626  pang and grew disturbed and uneasy at once. She tried to go away, but
  4627  her feet were treacherous, and carried her to the group instead. She
  4628  said to a girl almost at Tom's elbow--with sham vivacity:
  4629  
  4630  "Why, Mary Austin! you bad girl, why didn't you come to Sunday-school?"
  4631  
  4632  "I did come--didn't you see me?"
  4633  
  4634  "Why, no! Did you? Where did you sit?"
  4635  
  4636  "I was in Miss Peters' class, where I always go. I saw YOU."
  4637  
  4638  "Did you? Why, it's funny I didn't see you. I wanted to tell you about
  4639  the picnic."
  4640  
  4641  "Oh, that's jolly. Who's going to give it?"
  4642  
  4643  "My ma's going to let me have one."
  4644  
  4645  "Oh, goody; I hope she'll let ME come."
  4646  
  4647  "Well, she will. The picnic's for me. She'll let anybody come that I
  4648  want, and I want you."
  4649  
  4650  "That's ever so nice. When is it going to be?"
  4651  
  4652  "By and by. Maybe about vacation."
  4653  
  4654  "Oh, won't it be fun! You going to have all the girls and boys?"
  4655  
  4656  "Yes, every one that's friends to me--or wants to be"; and she glanced
  4657  ever so furtively at Tom, but he talked right along to Amy Lawrence
  4658  about the terrible storm on the island, and how the lightning tore the
  4659  great sycamore tree "all to flinders" while he was "standing within
  4660  three feet of it."
  4661  
  4662  "Oh, may I come?" said Grace Miller.
  4663  
  4664  "Yes."
  4665  
  4666  "And me?" said Sally Rogers.
  4667  
  4668  "Yes."
  4669  
  4670  "And me, too?" said Susy Harper. "And Joe?"
  4671  
  4672  "Yes."
  4673  
  4674  And so on, with clapping of joyful hands till all the group had begged
  4675  for invitations but Tom and Amy. Then Tom turned coolly away, still
  4676  talking, and took Amy with him. Becky's lips trembled and the tears
  4677  came to her eyes; she hid these signs with a forced gayety and went on
  4678  chattering, but the life had gone out of the picnic, now, and out of
  4679  everything else; she got away as soon as she could and hid herself and
  4680  had what her sex call "a good cry." Then she sat moody, with wounded
  4681  pride, till the bell rang. She roused up, now, with a vindictive cast
  4682  in her eye, and gave her plaited tails a shake and said she knew what
  4683  SHE'D do.
  4684  
  4685  At recess Tom continued his flirtation with Amy with jubilant
  4686  self-satisfaction. And he kept drifting about to find Becky and lacerate
  4687  her with the performance. At last he spied her, but there was a sudden
  4688  falling of his mercury. She was sitting cosily on a little bench behind
  4689  the schoolhouse looking at a picture-book with Alfred Temple--and so
  4690  absorbed were they, and their heads so close together over the book,
  4691  that they did not seem to be conscious of anything in the world besides.
  4692  Jealousy ran red-hot through Tom's veins. He began to hate himself for
  4693  throwing away the chance Becky had offered for a reconciliation. He
  4694  called himself a fool, and all the hard names he could think of. He
  4695  wanted to cry with vexation. Amy chatted happily along, as they walked,
  4696  for her heart was singing, but Tom's tongue had lost its function. He
  4697  did not hear what Amy was saying, and whenever she paused expectantly he
  4698  could only stammer an awkward assent, which was as often misplaced as
  4699  otherwise. He kept drifting to the rear of the schoolhouse, again and
  4700  again, to sear his eyeballs with the hateful spectacle there. He could
  4701  not help it. And it maddened him to see, as he thought he saw, that
  4702  Becky Thatcher never once suspected that he was even in the land of the
  4703  living. But she did see, nevertheless; and she knew she was winning her
  4704  fight, too, and was glad to see him suffer as she had suffered.
  4705  
  4706  Amy's happy prattle became intolerable. Tom hinted at things he had to
  4707  attend to; things that must be done; and time was fleeting. But in
  4708  vain--the girl chirped on. Tom thought, "Oh, hang her, ain't I ever
  4709  going to get rid of her?" At last he must be attending to those
  4710  things--and she said artlessly that she would be "around" when school
  4711  let out. And he hastened away, hating her for it.
  4712  
  4713  "Any other boy!" Tom thought, grating his teeth. "Any boy in the whole
  4714  town but that Saint Louis smarty that thinks he dresses so fine and is
  4715  aristocracy! Oh, all right, I licked you the first day you ever saw
  4716  this town, mister, and I'll lick you again! You just wait till I catch
  4717  you out! I'll just take and--"
  4718  
  4719  And he went through the motions of thrashing an imaginary boy
  4720  --pummelling the air, and kicking and gouging. "Oh, you do, do you? You
  4721  holler 'nough, do you? Now, then, let that learn you!" And so the
  4722  imaginary flogging was finished to his satisfaction.
  4723  
  4724  Tom fled home at noon. His conscience could not endure any more of
  4725  Amy's grateful happiness, and his jealousy could bear no more of the
  4726  other distress. Becky resumed her picture inspections with Alfred, but
  4727  as the minutes dragged along and no Tom came to suffer, her triumph
  4728  began to cloud and she lost interest; gravity and absent-mindedness
  4729  followed, and then melancholy; two or three times she pricked up her
  4730  ear at a footstep, but it was a false hope; no Tom came. At last she
  4731  grew entirely miserable and wished she hadn't carried it so far. When
  4732  poor Alfred, seeing that he was losing her, he did not know how, kept
  4733  exclaiming: "Oh, here's a jolly one! look at this!" she lost patience
  4734  at last, and said, "Oh, don't bother me! I don't care for them!" and
  4735  burst into tears, and got up and walked away.
  4736  
  4737  Alfred dropped alongside and was going to try to comfort her, but she
  4738  said:
  4739  
  4740  "Go away and leave me alone, can't you! I hate you!"
  4741  
  4742  So the boy halted, wondering what he could have done--for she had said
  4743  she would look at pictures all through the nooning--and she walked on,
  4744  crying. Then Alfred went musing into the deserted schoolhouse. He was
  4745  humiliated and angry. He easily guessed his way to the truth--the girl
  4746  had simply made a convenience of him to vent her spite upon Tom Sawyer.
  4747  He was far from hating Tom the less when this thought occurred to him.
  4748  He wished there was some way to get that boy into trouble without much
  4749  risk to himself. Tom's spelling-book fell under his eye. Here was his
  4750  opportunity. He gratefully opened to the lesson for the afternoon and
  4751  poured ink upon the page.
  4752  
  4753  Becky, glancing in at a window behind him at the moment, saw the act,
  4754  and moved on, without discovering herself. She started homeward, now,
  4755  intending to find Tom and tell him; Tom would be thankful and their
  4756  troubles would be healed. Before she was half way home, however, she
  4757  had changed her mind. The thought of Tom's treatment of her when she
  4758  was talking about her picnic came scorching back and filled her with
  4759  shame. She resolved to let him get whipped on the damaged
  4760  spelling-book's account, and to hate him forever, into the bargain.
  4761  
  4762  
  4763  
  4764  CHAPTER XIX
  4765  
  4766  TOM arrived at home in a dreary mood, and the first thing his aunt
  4767  said to him showed him that he had brought his sorrows to an
  4768  unpromising market:
  4769  
  4770  "Tom, I've a notion to skin you alive!"
  4771  
  4772  "Auntie, what have I done?"
  4773  
  4774  "Well, you've done enough. Here I go over to Sereny Harper, like an
  4775  old softy, expecting I'm going to make her believe all that rubbage
  4776  about that dream, when lo and behold you she'd found out from Joe that
  4777  you was over here and heard all the talk we had that night. Tom, I
  4778  don't know what is to become of a boy that will act like that. It makes
  4779  me feel so bad to think you could let me go to Sereny Harper and make
  4780  such a fool of myself and never say a word."
  4781  
  4782  This was a new aspect of the thing. His smartness of the morning had
  4783  seemed to Tom a good joke before, and very ingenious. It merely looked
  4784  mean and shabby now. He hung his head and could not think of anything
  4785  to say for a moment. Then he said:
  4786  
  4787  "Auntie, I wish I hadn't done it--but I didn't think."
  4788  
  4789  "Oh, child, you never think. You never think of anything but your own
  4790  selfishness. You could think to come all the way over here from
  4791  Jackson's Island in the night to laugh at our troubles, and you could
  4792  think to fool me with a lie about a dream; but you couldn't ever think
  4793  to pity us and save us from sorrow."
  4794  
  4795  "Auntie, I know now it was mean, but I didn't mean to be mean. I
  4796  didn't, honest. And besides, I didn't come over here to laugh at you
  4797  that night."
  4798  
  4799  "What did you come for, then?"
  4800  
  4801  "It was to tell you not to be uneasy about us, because we hadn't got
  4802  drownded."
  4803  
  4804  "Tom, Tom, I would be the thankfullest soul in this world if I could
  4805  believe you ever had as good a thought as that, but you know you never
  4806  did--and I know it, Tom."
  4807  
  4808  "Indeed and 'deed I did, auntie--I wish I may never stir if I didn't."
  4809  
  4810  "Oh, Tom, don't lie--don't do it. It only makes things a hundred times
  4811  worse."
  4812  
  4813  "It ain't a lie, auntie; it's the truth. I wanted to keep you from
  4814  grieving--that was all that made me come."
  4815  
  4816  "I'd give the whole world to believe that--it would cover up a power
  4817  of sins, Tom. I'd 'most be glad you'd run off and acted so bad. But it
  4818  ain't reasonable; because, why didn't you tell me, child?"
  4819  
  4820  "Why, you see, when you got to talking about the funeral, I just got
  4821  all full of the idea of our coming and hiding in the church, and I
  4822  couldn't somehow bear to spoil it. So I just put the bark back in my
  4823  pocket and kept mum."
  4824  
  4825  "What bark?"
  4826  
  4827  "The bark I had wrote on to tell you we'd gone pirating. I wish, now,
  4828  you'd waked up when I kissed you--I do, honest."
  4829  
  4830  The hard lines in his aunt's face relaxed and a sudden tenderness
  4831  dawned in her eyes.
  4832  
  4833  "DID you kiss me, Tom?"
  4834  
  4835  "Why, yes, I did."
  4836  
  4837  "Are you sure you did, Tom?"
  4838  
  4839  "Why, yes, I did, auntie--certain sure."
  4840  
  4841  "What did you kiss me for, Tom?"
  4842  
  4843  "Because I loved you so, and you laid there moaning and I was so sorry."
  4844  
  4845  The words sounded like truth. The old lady could not hide a tremor in
  4846  her voice when she said:
  4847  
  4848  "Kiss me again, Tom!--and be off with you to school, now, and don't
  4849  bother me any more."
  4850  
  4851  The moment he was gone, she ran to a closet and got out the ruin of a
  4852  jacket which Tom had gone pirating in. Then she stopped, with it in her
  4853  hand, and said to herself:
  4854  
  4855  "No, I don't dare. Poor boy, I reckon he's lied about it--but it's a
  4856  blessed, blessed lie, there's such a comfort come from it. I hope the
  4857  Lord--I KNOW the Lord will forgive him, because it was such
  4858  goodheartedness in him to tell it. But I don't want to find out it's a
  4859  lie. I won't look."
  4860  
  4861  She put the jacket away, and stood by musing a minute. Twice she put
  4862  out her hand to take the garment again, and twice she refrained. Once
  4863  more she ventured, and this time she fortified herself with the
  4864  thought: "It's a good lie--it's a good lie--I won't let it grieve me."
  4865  So she sought the jacket pocket. A moment later she was reading Tom's
  4866  piece of bark through flowing tears and saying: "I could forgive the
  4867  boy, now, if he'd committed a million sins!"
  4868  
  4869  
  4870  
  4871  CHAPTER XX
  4872  
  4873  THERE was something about Aunt Polly's manner, when she kissed Tom,
  4874  that swept away his low spirits and made him lighthearted and happy
  4875  again. He started to school and had the luck of coming upon Becky
  4876  Thatcher at the head of Meadow Lane. His mood always determined his
  4877  manner. Without a moment's hesitation he ran to her and said:
  4878  
  4879  "I acted mighty mean to-day, Becky, and I'm so sorry. I won't ever,
  4880  ever do that way again, as long as ever I live--please make up, won't
  4881  you?"
  4882  
  4883  The girl stopped and looked him scornfully in the face:
  4884  
  4885  "I'll thank you to keep yourself TO yourself, Mr. Thomas Sawyer. I'll
  4886  never speak to you again."
  4887  
  4888  She tossed her head and passed on. Tom was so stunned that he had not
  4889  even presence of mind enough to say "Who cares, Miss Smarty?" until the
  4890  right time to say it had gone by. So he said nothing. But he was in a
  4891  fine rage, nevertheless. He moped into the schoolyard wishing she were
  4892  a boy, and imagining how he would trounce her if she were. He presently
  4893  encountered her and delivered a stinging remark as he passed. She
  4894  hurled one in return, and the angry breach was complete. It seemed to
  4895  Becky, in her hot resentment, that she could hardly wait for school to
  4896  "take in," she was so impatient to see Tom flogged for the injured
  4897  spelling-book. If she had had any lingering notion of exposing Alfred
  4898  Temple, Tom's offensive fling had driven it entirely away.
  4899  
  4900  Poor girl, she did not know how fast she was nearing trouble herself.
  4901  The master, Mr. Dobbins, had reached middle age with an unsatisfied
  4902  ambition. The darling of his desires was, to be a doctor, but poverty
  4903  had decreed that he should be nothing higher than a village
  4904  schoolmaster. Every day he took a mysterious book out of his desk and
  4905  absorbed himself in it at times when no classes were reciting. He kept
  4906  that book under lock and key. There was not an urchin in school but was
  4907  perishing to have a glimpse of it, but the chance never came. Every boy
  4908  and girl had a theory about the nature of that book; but no two
  4909  theories were alike, and there was no way of getting at the facts in
  4910  the case. Now, as Becky was passing by the desk, which stood near the
  4911  door, she noticed that the key was in the lock! It was a precious
  4912  moment. She glanced around; found herself alone, and the next instant
  4913  she had the book in her hands. The title-page--Professor Somebody's
  4914  ANATOMY--carried no information to her mind; so she began to turn the
  4915  leaves. She came at once upon a handsomely engraved and colored
  4916  frontispiece--a human figure, stark naked. At that moment a shadow fell
  4917  on the page and Tom Sawyer stepped in at the door and caught a glimpse
  4918  of the picture. Becky snatched at the book to close it, and had the
  4919  hard luck to tear the pictured page half down the middle. She thrust
  4920  the volume into the desk, turned the key, and burst out crying with
  4921  shame and vexation.
  4922  
  4923  "Tom Sawyer, you are just as mean as you can be, to sneak up on a
  4924  person and look at what they're looking at."
  4925  
  4926  "How could I know you was looking at anything?"
  4927  
  4928  "You ought to be ashamed of yourself, Tom Sawyer; you know you're
  4929  going to tell on me, and oh, what shall I do, what shall I do! I'll be
  4930  whipped, and I never was whipped in school."
  4931  
  4932  Then she stamped her little foot and said:
  4933  
  4934  "BE so mean if you want to! I know something that's going to happen.
  4935  You just wait and you'll see! Hateful, hateful, hateful!"--and she
  4936  flung out of the house with a new explosion of crying.
  4937  
  4938  Tom stood still, rather flustered by this onslaught. Presently he said
  4939  to himself:
  4940  
  4941  "What a curious kind of a fool a girl is! Never been licked in school!
  4942  Shucks! What's a licking! That's just like a girl--they're so
  4943  thin-skinned and chicken-hearted. Well, of course I ain't going to tell
  4944  old Dobbins on this little fool, because there's other ways of getting
  4945  even on her, that ain't so mean; but what of it? Old Dobbins will ask
  4946  who it was tore his book. Nobody'll answer. Then he'll do just the way
  4947  he always does--ask first one and then t'other, and when he comes to the
  4948  right girl he'll know it, without any telling. Girls' faces always tell
  4949  on them. They ain't got any backbone. She'll get licked. Well, it's a
  4950  kind of a tight place for Becky Thatcher, because there ain't any way
  4951  out of it." Tom conned the thing a moment longer, and then added: "All
  4952  right, though; she'd like to see me in just such a fix--let her sweat it
  4953  out!"
  4954  
  4955  Tom joined the mob of skylarking scholars outside. In a few moments
  4956  the master arrived and school "took in." Tom did not feel a strong
  4957  interest in his studies. Every time he stole a glance at the girls'
  4958  side of the room Becky's face troubled him. Considering all things, he
  4959  did not want to pity her, and yet it was all he could do to help it. He
  4960  could get up no exultation that was really worthy the name. Presently
  4961  the spelling-book discovery was made, and Tom's mind was entirely full
  4962  of his own matters for a while after that. Becky roused up from her
  4963  lethargy of distress and showed good interest in the proceedings. She
  4964  did not expect that Tom could get out of his trouble by denying that he
  4965  spilt the ink on the book himself; and she was right. The denial only
  4966  seemed to make the thing worse for Tom. Becky supposed she would be
  4967  glad of that, and she tried to believe she was glad of it, but she
  4968  found she was not certain. When the worst came to the worst, she had an
  4969  impulse to get up and tell on Alfred Temple, but she made an effort and
  4970  forced herself to keep still--because, said she to herself, "he'll tell
  4971  about me tearing the picture sure. I wouldn't say a word, not to save
  4972  his life!"
  4973  
  4974  Tom took his whipping and went back to his seat not at all
  4975  broken-hearted, for he thought it was possible that he had unknowingly
  4976  upset the ink on the spelling-book himself, in some skylarking bout--he
  4977  had denied it for form's sake and because it was custom, and had stuck
  4978  to the denial from principle.
  4979  
  4980  A whole hour drifted by, the master sat nodding in his throne, the air
  4981  was drowsy with the hum of study. By and by, Mr. Dobbins straightened
  4982  himself up, yawned, then unlocked his desk, and reached for his book,
  4983  but seemed undecided whether to take it out or leave it. Most of the
  4984  pupils glanced up languidly, but there were two among them that watched
  4985  his movements with intent eyes. Mr. Dobbins fingered his book absently
  4986  for a while, then took it out and settled himself in his chair to read!
  4987  Tom shot a glance at Becky. He had seen a hunted and helpless rabbit
  4988  look as she did, with a gun levelled at its head. Instantly he forgot
  4989  his quarrel with her. Quick--something must be done! done in a flash,
  4990  too! But the very imminence of the emergency paralyzed his invention.
  4991  Good!--he had an inspiration! He would run and snatch the book, spring
  4992  through the door and fly. But his resolution shook for one little
  4993  instant, and the chance was lost--the master opened the volume. If Tom
  4994  only had the wasted opportunity back again! Too late. There was no help
  4995  for Becky now, he said. The next moment the master faced the school.
  4996  Every eye sank under his gaze. There was that in it which smote even
  4997  the innocent with fear. There was silence while one might count ten
  4998  --the master was gathering his wrath. Then he spoke: "Who tore this book?"
  4999  
  5000  There was not a sound. One could have heard a pin drop. The stillness
  5001  continued; the master searched face after face for signs of guilt.
  5002  
  5003  "Benjamin Rogers, did you tear this book?"
  5004  
  5005  A denial. Another pause.
  5006  
  5007  "Joseph Harper, did you?"
  5008  
  5009  Another denial. Tom's uneasiness grew more and more intense under the
  5010  slow torture of these proceedings. The master scanned the ranks of
  5011  boys--considered a while, then turned to the girls:
  5012  
  5013  "Amy Lawrence?"
  5014  
  5015  A shake of the head.
  5016  
  5017  "Gracie Miller?"
  5018  
  5019  The same sign.
  5020  
  5021  "Susan Harper, did you do this?"
  5022  
  5023  Another negative. The next girl was Becky Thatcher. Tom was trembling
  5024  from head to foot with excitement and a sense of the hopelessness of
  5025  the situation.
  5026  
  5027  "Rebecca Thatcher" [Tom glanced at her face--it was white with terror]
  5028  --"did you tear--no, look me in the face" [her hands rose in appeal]
  5029  --"did you tear this book?"
  5030  
  5031  A thought shot like lightning through Tom's brain. He sprang to his
  5032  feet and shouted--"I done it!"
  5033  
  5034  The school stared in perplexity at this incredible folly. Tom stood a
  5035  moment, to gather his dismembered faculties; and when he stepped
  5036  forward to go to his punishment the surprise, the gratitude, the
  5037  adoration that shone upon him out of poor Becky's eyes seemed pay
  5038  enough for a hundred floggings. Inspired by the splendor of his own
  5039  act, he took without an outcry the most merciless flaying that even Mr.
  5040  Dobbins had ever administered; and also received with indifference the
  5041  added cruelty of a command to remain two hours after school should be
  5042  dismissed--for he knew who would wait for him outside till his
  5043  captivity was done, and not count the tedious time as loss, either.
  5044  
  5045  Tom went to bed that night planning vengeance against Alfred Temple;
  5046  for with shame and repentance Becky had told him all, not forgetting
  5047  her own treachery; but even the longing for vengeance had to give way,
  5048  soon, to pleasanter musings, and he fell asleep at last with Becky's
  5049  latest words lingering dreamily in his ear--
  5050  
  5051  "Tom, how COULD you be so noble!"
  5052  
  5053  
  5054  
  5055  CHAPTER XXI
  5056  
  5057  VACATION was approaching. The schoolmaster, always severe, grew
  5058  severer and more exacting than ever, for he wanted the school to make a
  5059  good showing on "Examination" day. His rod and his ferule were seldom
  5060  idle now--at least among the smaller pupils. Only the biggest boys, and
  5061  young ladies of eighteen and twenty, escaped lashing. Mr. Dobbins'
  5062  lashings were very vigorous ones, too; for although he carried, under
  5063  his wig, a perfectly bald and shiny head, he had only reached middle
  5064  age, and there was no sign of feebleness in his muscle. As the great
  5065  day approached, all the tyranny that was in him came to the surface; he
  5066  seemed to take a vindictive pleasure in punishing the least
  5067  shortcomings. The consequence was, that the smaller boys spent their
  5068  days in terror and suffering and their nights in plotting revenge. They
  5069  threw away no opportunity to do the master a mischief. But he kept
  5070  ahead all the time. The retribution that followed every vengeful
  5071  success was so sweeping and majestic that the boys always retired from
  5072  the field badly worsted. At last they conspired together and hit upon a
  5073  plan that promised a dazzling victory. They swore in the sign-painter's
  5074  boy, told him the scheme, and asked his help. He had his own reasons
  5075  for being delighted, for the master boarded in his father's family and
  5076  had given the boy ample cause to hate him. The master's wife would go
  5077  on a visit to the country in a few days, and there would be nothing to
  5078  interfere with the plan; the master always prepared himself for great
  5079  occasions by getting pretty well fuddled, and the sign-painter's boy
  5080  said that when the dominie had reached the proper condition on
  5081  Examination Evening he would "manage the thing" while he napped in his
  5082  chair; then he would have him awakened at the right time and hurried
  5083  away to school.
  5084  
  5085  In the fulness of time the interesting occasion arrived. At eight in
  5086  the evening the schoolhouse was brilliantly lighted, and adorned with
  5087  wreaths and festoons of foliage and flowers. The master sat throned in
  5088  his great chair upon a raised platform, with his blackboard behind him.
  5089  He was looking tolerably mellow. Three rows of benches on each side and
  5090  six rows in front of him were occupied by the dignitaries of the town
  5091  and by the parents of the pupils. To his left, back of the rows of
  5092  citizens, was a spacious temporary platform upon which were seated the
  5093  scholars who were to take part in the exercises of the evening; rows of
  5094  small boys, washed and dressed to an intolerable state of discomfort;
  5095  rows of gawky big boys; snowbanks of girls and young ladies clad in
  5096  lawn and muslin and conspicuously conscious of their bare arms, their
  5097  grandmothers' ancient trinkets, their bits of pink and blue ribbon and
  5098  the flowers in their hair. All the rest of the house was filled with
  5099  non-participating scholars.
  5100  
  5101  The exercises began. A very little boy stood up and sheepishly
  5102  recited, "You'd scarce expect one of my age to speak in public on the
  5103  stage," etc.--accompanying himself with the painfully exact and
  5104  spasmodic gestures which a machine might have used--supposing the
  5105  machine to be a trifle out of order. But he got through safely, though
  5106  cruelly scared, and got a fine round of applause when he made his
  5107  manufactured bow and retired.
  5108  
  5109  A little shamefaced girl lisped, "Mary had a little lamb," etc.,
  5110  performed a compassion-inspiring curtsy, got her meed of applause, and
  5111  sat down flushed and happy.
  5112  
  5113  Tom Sawyer stepped forward with conceited confidence and soared into
  5114  the unquenchable and indestructible "Give me liberty or give me death"
  5115  speech, with fine fury and frantic gesticulation, and broke down in the
  5116  middle of it. A ghastly stage-fright seized him, his legs quaked under
  5117  him and he was like to choke. True, he had the manifest sympathy of the
  5118  house but he had the house's silence, too, which was even worse than
  5119  its sympathy. The master frowned, and this completed the disaster. Tom
  5120  struggled awhile and then retired, utterly defeated. There was a weak
  5121  attempt at applause, but it died early.
  5122  
  5123  "The Boy Stood on the Burning Deck" followed; also "The Assyrian Came
  5124  Down," and other declamatory gems. Then there were reading exercises,
  5125  and a spelling fight. The meagre Latin class recited with honor. The
  5126  prime feature of the evening was in order, now--original "compositions"
  5127  by the young ladies. Each in her turn stepped forward to the edge of
  5128  the platform, cleared her throat, held up her manuscript (tied with
  5129  dainty ribbon), and proceeded to read, with labored attention to
  5130  "expression" and punctuation. The themes were the same that had been
  5131  illuminated upon similar occasions by their mothers before them, their
  5132  grandmothers, and doubtless all their ancestors in the female line
  5133  clear back to the Crusades. "Friendship" was one; "Memories of Other
  5134  Days"; "Religion in History"; "Dream Land"; "The Advantages of
  5135  Culture"; "Forms of Political Government Compared and Contrasted";
  5136  "Melancholy"; "Filial Love"; "Heart Longings," etc., etc.
  5137  
  5138  A prevalent feature in these compositions was a nursed and petted
  5139  melancholy; another was a wasteful and opulent gush of "fine language";
  5140  another was a tendency to lug in by the ears particularly prized words
  5141  and phrases until they were worn entirely out; and a peculiarity that
  5142  conspicuously marked and marred them was the inveterate and intolerable
  5143  sermon that wagged its crippled tail at the end of each and every one
  5144  of them. No matter what the subject might be, a brain-racking effort
  5145  was made to squirm it into some aspect or other that the moral and
  5146  religious mind could contemplate with edification. The glaring
  5147  insincerity of these sermons was not sufficient to compass the
  5148  banishment of the fashion from the schools, and it is not sufficient
  5149  to-day; it never will be sufficient while the world stands, perhaps.
  5150  There is no school in all our land where the young ladies do not feel
  5151  obliged to close their compositions with a sermon; and you will find
  5152  that the sermon of the most frivolous and the least religious girl in
  5153  the school is always the longest and the most relentlessly pious. But
  5154  enough of this. Homely truth is unpalatable.
  5155  
  5156  Let us return to the "Examination." The first composition that was
  5157  read was one entitled "Is this, then, Life?" Perhaps the reader can
  5158  endure an extract from it:
  5159  
  5160    "In the common walks of life, with what delightful
  5161     emotions does the youthful mind look forward to some
  5162     anticipated scene of festivity! Imagination is busy
  5163     sketching rose-tinted pictures of joy. In fancy, the
  5164     voluptuous votary of fashion sees herself amid the
  5165     festive throng, 'the observed of all observers.' Her
  5166     graceful form, arrayed in snowy robes, is whirling
  5167     through the mazes of the joyous dance; her eye is
  5168     brightest, her step is lightest in the gay assembly.
  5169  
  5170    "In such delicious fancies time quickly glides by,
  5171     and the welcome hour arrives for her entrance into
  5172     the Elysian world, of which she has had such bright
  5173     dreams. How fairy-like does everything appear to
  5174     her enchanted vision! Each new scene is more charming
  5175     than the last. But after a while she finds that
  5176     beneath this goodly exterior, all is vanity, the
  5177     flattery which once charmed her soul, now grates
  5178     harshly upon her ear; the ball-room has lost its
  5179     charms; and with wasted health and imbittered heart,
  5180     she turns away with the conviction that earthly
  5181     pleasures cannot satisfy the longings of the soul!"
  5182  
  5183  And so forth and so on. There was a buzz of gratification from time to
  5184  time during the reading, accompanied by whispered ejaculations of "How
  5185  sweet!" "How eloquent!" "So true!" etc., and after the thing had closed
  5186  with a peculiarly afflicting sermon the applause was enthusiastic.
  5187  
  5188  Then arose a slim, melancholy girl, whose face had the "interesting"
  5189  paleness that comes of pills and indigestion, and read a "poem." Two
  5190  stanzas of it will do:
  5191  
  5192     "A MISSOURI MAIDEN'S FAREWELL TO ALABAMA
  5193  
  5194     "Alabama, good-bye! I love thee well!
  5195        But yet for a while do I leave thee now!
  5196      Sad, yes, sad thoughts of thee my heart doth swell,
  5197        And burning recollections throng my brow!
  5198      For I have wandered through thy flowery woods;
  5199        Have roamed and read near Tallapoosa's stream;
  5200      Have listened to Tallassee's warring floods,
  5201        And wooed on Coosa's side Aurora's beam.
  5202  
  5203     "Yet shame I not to bear an o'er-full heart,
  5204        Nor blush to turn behind my tearful eyes;
  5205      'Tis from no stranger land I now must part,
  5206        'Tis to no strangers left I yield these sighs.
  5207      Welcome and home were mine within this State,
  5208        Whose vales I leave--whose spires fade fast from me
  5209      And cold must be mine eyes, and heart, and tete,
  5210        When, dear Alabama! they turn cold on thee!"
  5211  
  5212  There were very few there who knew what "tete" meant, but the poem was
  5213  very satisfactory, nevertheless.
  5214  
  5215  Next appeared a dark-complexioned, black-eyed, black-haired young
  5216  lady, who paused an impressive moment, assumed a tragic expression, and
  5217  began to read in a measured, solemn tone:
  5218  
  5219    "A VISION
  5220  
  5221     "Dark and tempestuous was night. Around the
  5222     throne on high not a single star quivered; but
  5223     the deep intonations of the heavy thunder
  5224     constantly vibrated upon the ear; whilst the
  5225     terrific lightning revelled in angry mood
  5226     through the cloudy chambers of heaven, seeming
  5227     to scorn the power exerted over its terror by
  5228     the illustrious Franklin! Even the boisterous
  5229     winds unanimously came forth from their mystic
  5230     homes, and blustered about as if to enhance by
  5231     their aid the wildness of the scene.
  5232  
  5233     "At such a time, so dark, so dreary, for human
  5234     sympathy my very spirit sighed; but instead thereof,
  5235  
  5236     "'My dearest friend, my counsellor, my comforter
  5237     and guide--My joy in grief, my second bliss
  5238     in joy,' came to my side. She moved like one of
  5239     those bright beings pictured in the sunny walks
  5240     of fancy's Eden by the romantic and young, a
  5241     queen of beauty unadorned save by her own
  5242     transcendent loveliness. So soft was her step, it
  5243     failed to make even a sound, and but for the
  5244     magical thrill imparted by her genial touch, as
  5245     other unobtrusive beauties, she would have glided
  5246     away un-perceived--unsought. A strange sadness
  5247     rested upon her features, like icy tears upon
  5248     the robe of December, as she pointed to the
  5249     contending elements without, and bade me contemplate
  5250     the two beings presented."
  5251  
  5252  This nightmare occupied some ten pages of manuscript and wound up with
  5253  a sermon so destructive of all hope to non-Presbyterians that it took
  5254  the first prize. This composition was considered to be the very finest
  5255  effort of the evening. The mayor of the village, in delivering the
  5256  prize to the author of it, made a warm speech in which he said that it
  5257  was by far the most "eloquent" thing he had ever listened to, and that
  5258  Daniel Webster himself might well be proud of it.
  5259  
  5260  It may be remarked, in passing, that the number of compositions in
  5261  which the word "beauteous" was over-fondled, and human experience
  5262  referred to as "life's page," was up to the usual average.
  5263  
  5264  Now the master, mellow almost to the verge of geniality, put his chair
  5265  aside, turned his back to the audience, and began to draw a map of
  5266  America on the blackboard, to exercise the geography class upon. But he
  5267  made a sad business of it with his unsteady hand, and a smothered
  5268  titter rippled over the house. He knew what the matter was, and set
  5269  himself to right it. He sponged out lines and remade them; but he only
  5270  distorted them more than ever, and the tittering was more pronounced.
  5271  He threw his entire attention upon his work, now, as if determined not
  5272  to be put down by the mirth. He felt that all eyes were fastened upon
  5273  him; he imagined he was succeeding, and yet the tittering continued; it
  5274  even manifestly increased. And well it might. There was a garret above,
  5275  pierced with a scuttle over his head; and down through this scuttle
  5276  came a cat, suspended around the haunches by a string; she had a rag
  5277  tied about her head and jaws to keep her from mewing; as she slowly
  5278  descended she curved upward and clawed at the string, she swung
  5279  downward and clawed at the intangible air. The tittering rose higher
  5280  and higher--the cat was within six inches of the absorbed teacher's
  5281  head--down, down, a little lower, and she grabbed his wig with her
  5282  desperate claws, clung to it, and was snatched up into the garret in an
  5283  instant with her trophy still in her possession! And how the light did
  5284  blaze abroad from the master's bald pate--for the sign-painter's boy
  5285  had GILDED it!
  5286  
  5287  That broke up the meeting. The boys were avenged. Vacation had come.
  5288  
  5289     NOTE:--The pretended "compositions" quoted in
  5290     this chapter are taken without alteration from a
  5291     volume entitled "Prose and Poetry, by a Western
  5292     Lady"--but they are exactly and precisely after
  5293     the schoolgirl pattern, and hence are much
  5294     happier than any mere imitations could be.
  5295  
  5296  
  5297  
  5298  CHAPTER XXII
  5299  
  5300  TOM joined the new order of Cadets of Temperance, being attracted by
  5301  the showy character of their "regalia." He promised to abstain from
  5302  smoking, chewing, and profanity as long as he remained a member. Now he
  5303  found out a new thing--namely, that to promise not to do a thing is the
  5304  surest way in the world to make a body want to go and do that very
  5305  thing. Tom soon found himself tormented with a desire to drink and
  5306  swear; the desire grew to be so intense that nothing but the hope of a
  5307  chance to display himself in his red sash kept him from withdrawing
  5308  from the order. Fourth of July was coming; but he soon gave that up
  5309  --gave it up before he had worn his shackles over forty-eight hours--and
  5310  fixed his hopes upon old Judge Frazer, justice of the peace, who was
  5311  apparently on his deathbed and would have a big public funeral, since
  5312  he was so high an official. During three days Tom was deeply concerned
  5313  about the Judge's condition and hungry for news of it. Sometimes his
  5314  hopes ran high--so high that he would venture to get out his regalia
  5315  and practise before the looking-glass. But the Judge had a most
  5316  discouraging way of fluctuating. At last he was pronounced upon the
  5317  mend--and then convalescent. Tom was disgusted; and felt a sense of
  5318  injury, too. He handed in his resignation at once--and that night the
  5319  Judge suffered a relapse and died. Tom resolved that he would never
  5320  trust a man like that again.
  5321  
  5322  The funeral was a fine thing. The Cadets paraded in a style calculated
  5323  to kill the late member with envy. Tom was a free boy again, however
  5324  --there was something in that. He could drink and swear, now--but found
  5325  to his surprise that he did not want to. The simple fact that he could,
  5326  took the desire away, and the charm of it.
  5327  
  5328  Tom presently wondered to find that his coveted vacation was beginning
  5329  to hang a little heavily on his hands.
  5330  
  5331  He attempted a diary--but nothing happened during three days, and so
  5332  he abandoned it.
  5333  
  5334  The first of all the negro minstrel shows came to town, and made a
  5335  sensation. Tom and Joe Harper got up a band of performers and were
  5336  happy for two days.
  5337  
  5338  Even the Glorious Fourth was in some sense a failure, for it rained
  5339  hard, there was no procession in consequence, and the greatest man in
  5340  the world (as Tom supposed), Mr. Benton, an actual United States
  5341  Senator, proved an overwhelming disappointment--for he was not
  5342  twenty-five feet high, nor even anywhere in the neighborhood of it.
  5343  
  5344  A circus came. The boys played circus for three days afterward in
  5345  tents made of rag carpeting--admission, three pins for boys, two for
  5346  girls--and then circusing was abandoned.
  5347  
  5348  A phrenologist and a mesmerizer came--and went again and left the
  5349  village duller and drearier than ever.
  5350  
  5351  There were some boys-and-girls' parties, but they were so few and so
  5352  delightful that they only made the aching voids between ache the harder.
  5353  
  5354  Becky Thatcher was gone to her Constantinople home to stay with her
  5355  parents during vacation--so there was no bright side to life anywhere.
  5356  
  5357  The dreadful secret of the murder was a chronic misery. It was a very
  5358  cancer for permanency and pain.
  5359  
  5360  Then came the measles.
  5361  
  5362  During two long weeks Tom lay a prisoner, dead to the world and its
  5363  happenings. He was very ill, he was interested in nothing. When he got
  5364  upon his feet at last and moved feebly down-town, a melancholy change
  5365  had come over everything and every creature. There had been a
  5366  "revival," and everybody had "got religion," not only the adults, but
  5367  even the boys and girls. Tom went about, hoping against hope for the
  5368  sight of one blessed sinful face, but disappointment crossed him
  5369  everywhere. He found Joe Harper studying a Testament, and turned sadly
  5370  away from the depressing spectacle. He sought Ben Rogers, and found him
  5371  visiting the poor with a basket of tracts. He hunted up Jim Hollis, who
  5372  called his attention to the precious blessing of his late measles as a
  5373  warning. Every boy he encountered added another ton to his depression;
  5374  and when, in desperation, he flew for refuge at last to the bosom of
  5375  Huckleberry Finn and was received with a Scriptural quotation, his
  5376  heart broke and he crept home and to bed realizing that he alone of all
  5377  the town was lost, forever and forever.
  5378  
  5379  And that night there came on a terrific storm, with driving rain,
  5380  awful claps of thunder and blinding sheets of lightning. He covered his
  5381  head with the bedclothes and waited in a horror of suspense for his
  5382  doom; for he had not the shadow of a doubt that all this hubbub was
  5383  about him. He believed he had taxed the forbearance of the powers above
  5384  to the extremity of endurance and that this was the result. It might
  5385  have seemed to him a waste of pomp and ammunition to kill a bug with a
  5386  battery of artillery, but there seemed nothing incongruous about the
  5387  getting up such an expensive thunderstorm as this to knock the turf
  5388  from under an insect like himself.
  5389  
  5390  By and by the tempest spent itself and died without accomplishing its
  5391  object. The boy's first impulse was to be grateful, and reform. His
  5392  second was to wait--for there might not be any more storms.
  5393  
  5394  The next day the doctors were back; Tom had relapsed. The three weeks
  5395  he spent on his back this time seemed an entire age. When he got abroad
  5396  at last he was hardly grateful that he had been spared, remembering how
  5397  lonely was his estate, how companionless and forlorn he was. He drifted
  5398  listlessly down the street and found Jim Hollis acting as judge in a
  5399  juvenile court that was trying a cat for murder, in the presence of her
  5400  victim, a bird. He found Joe Harper and Huck Finn up an alley eating a
  5401  stolen melon. Poor lads! they--like Tom--had suffered a relapse.
  5402  
  5403  
  5404  
  5405  CHAPTER XXIII
  5406  
  5407  AT last the sleepy atmosphere was stirred--and vigorously: the murder
  5408  trial came on in the court. It became the absorbing topic of village
  5409  talk immediately. Tom could not get away from it. Every reference to
  5410  the murder sent a shudder to his heart, for his troubled conscience and
  5411  fears almost persuaded him that these remarks were put forth in his
  5412  hearing as "feelers"; he did not see how he could be suspected of
  5413  knowing anything about the murder, but still he could not be
  5414  comfortable in the midst of this gossip. It kept him in a cold shiver
  5415  all the time. He took Huck to a lonely place to have a talk with him.
  5416  It would be some relief to unseal his tongue for a little while; to
  5417  divide his burden of distress with another sufferer. Moreover, he
  5418  wanted to assure himself that Huck had remained discreet.
  5419  
  5420  "Huck, have you ever told anybody about--that?"
  5421  
  5422  "'Bout what?"
  5423  
  5424  "You know what."
  5425  
  5426  "Oh--'course I haven't."
  5427  
  5428  "Never a word?"
  5429  
  5430  "Never a solitary word, so help me. What makes you ask?"
  5431  
  5432  "Well, I was afeard."
  5433  
  5434  "Why, Tom Sawyer, we wouldn't be alive two days if that got found out.
  5435  YOU know that."
  5436  
  5437  Tom felt more comfortable. After a pause:
  5438  
  5439  "Huck, they couldn't anybody get you to tell, could they?"
  5440  
  5441  "Get me to tell? Why, if I wanted that half-breed devil to drownd me
  5442  they could get me to tell. They ain't no different way."
  5443  
  5444  "Well, that's all right, then. I reckon we're safe as long as we keep
  5445  mum. But let's swear again, anyway. It's more surer."
  5446  
  5447  "I'm agreed."
  5448  
  5449  So they swore again with dread solemnities.
  5450  
  5451  "What is the talk around, Huck? I've heard a power of it."
  5452  
  5453  "Talk? Well, it's just Muff Potter, Muff Potter, Muff Potter all the
  5454  time. It keeps me in a sweat, constant, so's I want to hide som'ers."
  5455  
  5456  "That's just the same way they go on round me. I reckon he's a goner.
  5457  Don't you feel sorry for him, sometimes?"
  5458  
  5459  "Most always--most always. He ain't no account; but then he hain't
  5460  ever done anything to hurt anybody. Just fishes a little, to get money
  5461  to get drunk on--and loafs around considerable; but lord, we all do
  5462  that--leastways most of us--preachers and such like. But he's kind of
  5463  good--he give me half a fish, once, when there warn't enough for two;
  5464  and lots of times he's kind of stood by me when I was out of luck."
  5465  
  5466  "Well, he's mended kites for me, Huck, and knitted hooks on to my
  5467  line. I wish we could get him out of there."
  5468  
  5469  "My! we couldn't get him out, Tom. And besides, 'twouldn't do any
  5470  good; they'd ketch him again."
  5471  
  5472  "Yes--so they would. But I hate to hear 'em abuse him so like the
  5473  dickens when he never done--that."
  5474  
  5475  "I do too, Tom. Lord, I hear 'em say he's the bloodiest looking
  5476  villain in this country, and they wonder he wasn't ever hung before."
  5477  
  5478  "Yes, they talk like that, all the time. I've heard 'em say that if he
  5479  was to get free they'd lynch him."
  5480  
  5481  "And they'd do it, too."
  5482  
  5483  The boys had a long talk, but it brought them little comfort. As the
  5484  twilight drew on, they found themselves hanging about the neighborhood
  5485  of the little isolated jail, perhaps with an undefined hope that
  5486  something would happen that might clear away their difficulties. But
  5487  nothing happened; there seemed to be no angels or fairies interested in
  5488  this luckless captive.
  5489  
  5490  The boys did as they had often done before--went to the cell grating
  5491  and gave Potter some tobacco and matches. He was on the ground floor
  5492  and there were no guards.
  5493  
  5494  His gratitude for their gifts had always smote their consciences
  5495  before--it cut deeper than ever, this time. They felt cowardly and
  5496  treacherous to the last degree when Potter said:
  5497  
  5498  "You've been mighty good to me, boys--better'n anybody else in this
  5499  town. And I don't forget it, I don't. Often I says to myself, says I,
  5500  'I used to mend all the boys' kites and things, and show 'em where the
  5501  good fishin' places was, and befriend 'em what I could, and now they've
  5502  all forgot old Muff when he's in trouble; but Tom don't, and Huck
  5503  don't--THEY don't forget him, says I, 'and I don't forget them.' Well,
  5504  boys, I done an awful thing--drunk and crazy at the time--that's the
  5505  only way I account for it--and now I got to swing for it, and it's
  5506  right. Right, and BEST, too, I reckon--hope so, anyway. Well, we won't
  5507  talk about that. I don't want to make YOU feel bad; you've befriended
  5508  me. But what I want to say, is, don't YOU ever get drunk--then you won't
  5509  ever get here. Stand a litter furder west--so--that's it; it's a prime
  5510  comfort to see faces that's friendly when a body's in such a muck of
  5511  trouble, and there don't none come here but yourn. Good friendly
  5512  faces--good friendly faces. Git up on one another's backs and let me
  5513  touch 'em. That's it. Shake hands--yourn'll come through the bars, but
  5514  mine's too big. Little hands, and weak--but they've helped Muff Potter
  5515  a power, and they'd help him more if they could."
  5516  
  5517  Tom went home miserable, and his dreams that night were full of
  5518  horrors. The next day and the day after, he hung about the court-room,
  5519  drawn by an almost irresistible impulse to go in, but forcing himself
  5520  to stay out. Huck was having the same experience. They studiously
  5521  avoided each other. Each wandered away, from time to time, but the same
  5522  dismal fascination always brought them back presently. Tom kept his
  5523  ears open when idlers sauntered out of the court-room, but invariably
  5524  heard distressing news--the toils were closing more and more
  5525  relentlessly around poor Potter. At the end of the second day the
  5526  village talk was to the effect that Injun Joe's evidence stood firm and
  5527  unshaken, and that there was not the slightest question as to what the
  5528  jury's verdict would be.
  5529  
  5530  Tom was out late, that night, and came to bed through the window. He
  5531  was in a tremendous state of excitement. It was hours before he got to
  5532  sleep. All the village flocked to the court-house the next morning, for
  5533  this was to be the great day. Both sexes were about equally represented
  5534  in the packed audience. After a long wait the jury filed in and took
  5535  their places; shortly afterward, Potter, pale and haggard, timid and
  5536  hopeless, was brought in, with chains upon him, and seated where all
  5537  the curious eyes could stare at him; no less conspicuous was Injun Joe,
  5538  stolid as ever. There was another pause, and then the judge arrived and
  5539  the sheriff proclaimed the opening of the court. The usual whisperings
  5540  among the lawyers and gathering together of papers followed. These
  5541  details and accompanying delays worked up an atmosphere of preparation
  5542  that was as impressive as it was fascinating.
  5543  
  5544  Now a witness was called who testified that he found Muff Potter
  5545  washing in the brook, at an early hour of the morning that the murder
  5546  was discovered, and that he immediately sneaked away. After some
  5547  further questioning, counsel for the prosecution said:
  5548  
  5549  "Take the witness."
  5550  
  5551  The prisoner raised his eyes for a moment, but dropped them again when
  5552  his own counsel said:
  5553  
  5554  "I have no questions to ask him."
  5555  
  5556  The next witness proved the finding of the knife near the corpse.
  5557  Counsel for the prosecution said:
  5558  
  5559  "Take the witness."
  5560  
  5561  "I have no questions to ask him," Potter's lawyer replied.
  5562  
  5563  A third witness swore he had often seen the knife in Potter's
  5564  possession.
  5565  
  5566  "Take the witness."
  5567  
  5568  Counsel for Potter declined to question him. The faces of the audience
  5569  began to betray annoyance. Did this attorney mean to throw away his
  5570  client's life without an effort?
  5571  
  5572  Several witnesses deposed concerning Potter's guilty behavior when
  5573  brought to the scene of the murder. They were allowed to leave the
  5574  stand without being cross-questioned.
  5575  
  5576  Every detail of the damaging circumstances that occurred in the
  5577  graveyard upon that morning which all present remembered so well was
  5578  brought out by credible witnesses, but none of them were cross-examined
  5579  by Potter's lawyer. The perplexity and dissatisfaction of the house
  5580  expressed itself in murmurs and provoked a reproof from the bench.
  5581  Counsel for the prosecution now said:
  5582  
  5583  "By the oaths of citizens whose simple word is above suspicion, we
  5584  have fastened this awful crime, beyond all possibility of question,
  5585  upon the unhappy prisoner at the bar. We rest our case here."
  5586  
  5587  A groan escaped from poor Potter, and he put his face in his hands and
  5588  rocked his body softly to and fro, while a painful silence reigned in
  5589  the court-room. Many men were moved, and many women's compassion
  5590  testified itself in tears. Counsel for the defence rose and said:
  5591  
  5592  "Your honor, in our remarks at the opening of this trial, we
  5593  foreshadowed our purpose to prove that our client did this fearful deed
  5594  while under the influence of a blind and irresponsible delirium
  5595  produced by drink. We have changed our mind. We shall not offer that
  5596  plea." [Then to the clerk:] "Call Thomas Sawyer!"
  5597  
  5598  A puzzled amazement awoke in every face in the house, not even
  5599  excepting Potter's. Every eye fastened itself with wondering interest
  5600  upon Tom as he rose and took his place upon the stand. The boy looked
  5601  wild enough, for he was badly scared. The oath was administered.
  5602  
  5603  "Thomas Sawyer, where were you on the seventeenth of June, about the
  5604  hour of midnight?"
  5605  
  5606  Tom glanced at Injun Joe's iron face and his tongue failed him. The
  5607  audience listened breathless, but the words refused to come. After a
  5608  few moments, however, the boy got a little of his strength back, and
  5609  managed to put enough of it into his voice to make part of the house
  5610  hear:
  5611  
  5612  "In the graveyard!"
  5613  
  5614  "A little bit louder, please. Don't be afraid. You were--"
  5615  
  5616  "In the graveyard."
  5617  
  5618  A contemptuous smile flitted across Injun Joe's face.
  5619  
  5620  "Were you anywhere near Horse Williams' grave?"
  5621  
  5622  "Yes, sir."
  5623  
  5624  "Speak up--just a trifle louder. How near were you?"
  5625  
  5626  "Near as I am to you."
  5627  
  5628  "Were you hidden, or not?"
  5629  
  5630  "I was hid."
  5631  
  5632  "Where?"
  5633  
  5634  "Behind the elms that's on the edge of the grave."
  5635  
  5636  Injun Joe gave a barely perceptible start.
  5637  
  5638  "Any one with you?"
  5639  
  5640  "Yes, sir. I went there with--"
  5641  
  5642  "Wait--wait a moment. Never mind mentioning your companion's name. We
  5643  will produce him at the proper time. Did you carry anything there with
  5644  you."
  5645  
  5646  Tom hesitated and looked confused.
  5647  
  5648  "Speak out, my boy--don't be diffident. The truth is always
  5649  respectable. What did you take there?"
  5650  
  5651  "Only a--a--dead cat."
  5652  
  5653  There was a ripple of mirth, which the court checked.
  5654  
  5655  "We will produce the skeleton of that cat. Now, my boy, tell us
  5656  everything that occurred--tell it in your own way--don't skip anything,
  5657  and don't be afraid."
  5658  
  5659  Tom began--hesitatingly at first, but as he warmed to his subject his
  5660  words flowed more and more easily; in a little while every sound ceased
  5661  but his own voice; every eye fixed itself upon him; with parted lips
  5662  and bated breath the audience hung upon his words, taking no note of
  5663  time, rapt in the ghastly fascinations of the tale. The strain upon
  5664  pent emotion reached its climax when the boy said:
  5665  
  5666  "--and as the doctor fetched the board around and Muff Potter fell,
  5667  Injun Joe jumped with the knife and--"
  5668  
  5669  Crash! Quick as lightning the half-breed sprang for a window, tore his
  5670  way through all opposers, and was gone!
  5671  
  5672  
  5673  
  5674  CHAPTER XXIV
  5675  
  5676  TOM was a glittering hero once more--the pet of the old, the envy of
  5677  the young. His name even went into immortal print, for the village
  5678  paper magnified him. There were some that believed he would be
  5679  President, yet, if he escaped hanging.
  5680  
  5681  As usual, the fickle, unreasoning world took Muff Potter to its bosom
  5682  and fondled him as lavishly as it had abused him before. But that sort
  5683  of conduct is to the world's credit; therefore it is not well to find
  5684  fault with it.
  5685  
  5686  Tom's days were days of splendor and exultation to him, but his nights
  5687  were seasons of horror. Injun Joe infested all his dreams, and always
  5688  with doom in his eye. Hardly any temptation could persuade the boy to
  5689  stir abroad after nightfall. Poor Huck was in the same state of
  5690  wretchedness and terror, for Tom had told the whole story to the lawyer
  5691  the night before the great day of the trial, and Huck was sore afraid
  5692  that his share in the business might leak out, yet, notwithstanding
  5693  Injun Joe's flight had saved him the suffering of testifying in court.
  5694  The poor fellow had got the attorney to promise secrecy, but what of
  5695  that? Since Tom's harassed conscience had managed to drive him to the
  5696  lawyer's house by night and wring a dread tale from lips that had been
  5697  sealed with the dismalest and most formidable of oaths, Huck's
  5698  confidence in the human race was well-nigh obliterated.
  5699  
  5700  Daily Muff Potter's gratitude made Tom glad he had spoken; but nightly
  5701  he wished he had sealed up his tongue.
  5702  
  5703  Half the time Tom was afraid Injun Joe would never be captured; the
  5704  other half he was afraid he would be. He felt sure he never could draw
  5705  a safe breath again until that man was dead and he had seen the corpse.
  5706  
  5707  Rewards had been offered, the country had been scoured, but no Injun
  5708  Joe was found. One of those omniscient and awe-inspiring marvels, a
  5709  detective, came up from St. Louis, moused around, shook his head,
  5710  looked wise, and made that sort of astounding success which members of
  5711  that craft usually achieve. That is to say, he "found a clew." But you
  5712  can't hang a "clew" for murder, and so after that detective had got
  5713  through and gone home, Tom felt just as insecure as he was before.
  5714  
  5715  The slow days drifted on, and each left behind it a slightly lightened
  5716  weight of apprehension.
  5717  
  5718  
  5719  
  5720  CHAPTER XXV
  5721  
  5722  THERE comes a time in every rightly-constructed boy's life when he has
  5723  a raging desire to go somewhere and dig for hidden treasure. This
  5724  desire suddenly came upon Tom one day. He sallied out to find Joe
  5725  Harper, but failed of success. Next he sought Ben Rogers; he had gone
  5726  fishing. Presently he stumbled upon Huck Finn the Red-Handed. Huck
  5727  would answer. Tom took him to a private place and opened the matter to
  5728  him confidentially. Huck was willing. Huck was always willing to take a
  5729  hand in any enterprise that offered entertainment and required no
  5730  capital, for he had a troublesome superabundance of that sort of time
  5731  which is not money. "Where'll we dig?" said Huck.
  5732  
  5733  "Oh, most anywhere."
  5734  
  5735  "Why, is it hid all around?"
  5736  
  5737  "No, indeed it ain't. It's hid in mighty particular places, Huck
  5738  --sometimes on islands, sometimes in rotten chests under the end of a
  5739  limb of an old dead tree, just where the shadow falls at midnight; but
  5740  mostly under the floor in ha'nted houses."
  5741  
  5742  "Who hides it?"
  5743  
  5744  "Why, robbers, of course--who'd you reckon? Sunday-school
  5745  sup'rintendents?"
  5746  
  5747  "I don't know. If 'twas mine I wouldn't hide it; I'd spend it and have
  5748  a good time."
  5749  
  5750  "So would I. But robbers don't do that way. They always hide it and
  5751  leave it there."
  5752  
  5753  "Don't they come after it any more?"
  5754  
  5755  "No, they think they will, but they generally forget the marks, or
  5756  else they die. Anyway, it lays there a long time and gets rusty; and by
  5757  and by somebody finds an old yellow paper that tells how to find the
  5758  marks--a paper that's got to be ciphered over about a week because it's
  5759  mostly signs and hy'roglyphics."
  5760  
  5761  "Hyro--which?"
  5762  
  5763  "Hy'roglyphics--pictures and things, you know, that don't seem to mean
  5764  anything."
  5765  
  5766  "Have you got one of them papers, Tom?"
  5767  
  5768  "No."
  5769  
  5770  "Well then, how you going to find the marks?"
  5771  
  5772  "I don't want any marks. They always bury it under a ha'nted house or
  5773  on an island, or under a dead tree that's got one limb sticking out.
  5774  Well, we've tried Jackson's Island a little, and we can try it again
  5775  some time; and there's the old ha'nted house up the Still-House branch,
  5776  and there's lots of dead-limb trees--dead loads of 'em."
  5777  
  5778  "Is it under all of them?"
  5779  
  5780  "How you talk! No!"
  5781  
  5782  "Then how you going to know which one to go for?"
  5783  
  5784  "Go for all of 'em!"
  5785  
  5786  "Why, Tom, it'll take all summer."
  5787  
  5788  "Well, what of that? Suppose you find a brass pot with a hundred
  5789  dollars in it, all rusty and gray, or rotten chest full of di'monds.
  5790  How's that?"
  5791  
  5792  Huck's eyes glowed.
  5793  
  5794  "That's bully. Plenty bully enough for me. Just you gimme the hundred
  5795  dollars and I don't want no di'monds."
  5796  
  5797  "All right. But I bet you I ain't going to throw off on di'monds. Some
  5798  of 'em's worth twenty dollars apiece--there ain't any, hardly, but's
  5799  worth six bits or a dollar."
  5800  
  5801  "No! Is that so?"
  5802  
  5803  "Cert'nly--anybody'll tell you so. Hain't you ever seen one, Huck?"
  5804  
  5805  "Not as I remember."
  5806  
  5807  "Oh, kings have slathers of them."
  5808  
  5809  "Well, I don' know no kings, Tom."
  5810  
  5811  "I reckon you don't. But if you was to go to Europe you'd see a raft
  5812  of 'em hopping around."
  5813  
  5814  "Do they hop?"
  5815  
  5816  "Hop?--your granny! No!"
  5817  
  5818  "Well, what did you say they did, for?"
  5819  
  5820  "Shucks, I only meant you'd SEE 'em--not hopping, of course--what do
  5821  they want to hop for?--but I mean you'd just see 'em--scattered around,
  5822  you know, in a kind of a general way. Like that old humpbacked Richard."
  5823  
  5824  "Richard? What's his other name?"
  5825  
  5826  "He didn't have any other name. Kings don't have any but a given name."
  5827  
  5828  "No?"
  5829  
  5830  "But they don't."
  5831  
  5832  "Well, if they like it, Tom, all right; but I don't want to be a king
  5833  and have only just a given name, like a nigger. But say--where you
  5834  going to dig first?"
  5835  
  5836  "Well, I don't know. S'pose we tackle that old dead-limb tree on the
  5837  hill t'other side of Still-House branch?"
  5838  
  5839  "I'm agreed."
  5840  
  5841  So they got a crippled pick and a shovel, and set out on their
  5842  three-mile tramp. They arrived hot and panting, and threw themselves
  5843  down in the shade of a neighboring elm to rest and have a smoke.
  5844  
  5845  "I like this," said Tom.
  5846  
  5847  "So do I."
  5848  
  5849  "Say, Huck, if we find a treasure here, what you going to do with your
  5850  share?"
  5851  
  5852  "Well, I'll have pie and a glass of soda every day, and I'll go to
  5853  every circus that comes along. I bet I'll have a gay time."
  5854  
  5855  "Well, ain't you going to save any of it?"
  5856  
  5857  "Save it? What for?"
  5858  
  5859  "Why, so as to have something to live on, by and by."
  5860  
  5861  "Oh, that ain't any use. Pap would come back to thish-yer town some
  5862  day and get his claws on it if I didn't hurry up, and I tell you he'd
  5863  clean it out pretty quick. What you going to do with yourn, Tom?"
  5864  
  5865  "I'm going to buy a new drum, and a sure-'nough sword, and a red
  5866  necktie and a bull pup, and get married."
  5867  
  5868  "Married!"
  5869  
  5870  "That's it."
  5871  
  5872  "Tom, you--why, you ain't in your right mind."
  5873  
  5874  "Wait--you'll see."
  5875  
  5876  "Well, that's the foolishest thing you could do. Look at pap and my
  5877  mother. Fight! Why, they used to fight all the time. I remember, mighty
  5878  well."
  5879  
  5880  "That ain't anything. The girl I'm going to marry won't fight."
  5881  
  5882  "Tom, I reckon they're all alike. They'll all comb a body. Now you
  5883  better think 'bout this awhile. I tell you you better. What's the name
  5884  of the gal?"
  5885  
  5886  "It ain't a gal at all--it's a girl."
  5887  
  5888  "It's all the same, I reckon; some says gal, some says girl--both's
  5889  right, like enough. Anyway, what's her name, Tom?"
  5890  
  5891  "I'll tell you some time--not now."
  5892  
  5893  "All right--that'll do. Only if you get married I'll be more lonesomer
  5894  than ever."
  5895  
  5896  "No you won't. You'll come and live with me. Now stir out of this and
  5897  we'll go to digging."
  5898  
  5899  They worked and sweated for half an hour. No result. They toiled
  5900  another half-hour. Still no result. Huck said:
  5901  
  5902  "Do they always bury it as deep as this?"
  5903  
  5904  "Sometimes--not always. Not generally. I reckon we haven't got the
  5905  right place."
  5906  
  5907  So they chose a new spot and began again. The labor dragged a little,
  5908  but still they made progress. They pegged away in silence for some
  5909  time. Finally Huck leaned on his shovel, swabbed the beaded drops from
  5910  his brow with his sleeve, and said:
  5911  
  5912  "Where you going to dig next, after we get this one?"
  5913  
  5914  "I reckon maybe we'll tackle the old tree that's over yonder on
  5915  Cardiff Hill back of the widow's."
  5916  
  5917  "I reckon that'll be a good one. But won't the widow take it away from
  5918  us, Tom? It's on her land."
  5919  
  5920  "SHE take it away! Maybe she'd like to try it once. Whoever finds one
  5921  of these hid treasures, it belongs to him. It don't make any difference
  5922  whose land it's on."
  5923  
  5924  That was satisfactory. The work went on. By and by Huck said:
  5925  
  5926  "Blame it, we must be in the wrong place again. What do you think?"
  5927  
  5928  "It is mighty curious, Huck. I don't understand it. Sometimes witches
  5929  interfere. I reckon maybe that's what's the trouble now."
  5930  
  5931  "Shucks! Witches ain't got no power in the daytime."
  5932  
  5933  "Well, that's so. I didn't think of that. Oh, I know what the matter
  5934  is! What a blamed lot of fools we are! You got to find out where the
  5935  shadow of the limb falls at midnight, and that's where you dig!"
  5936  
  5937  "Then consound it, we've fooled away all this work for nothing. Now
  5938  hang it all, we got to come back in the night. It's an awful long way.
  5939  Can you get out?"
  5940  
  5941  "I bet I will. We've got to do it to-night, too, because if somebody
  5942  sees these holes they'll know in a minute what's here and they'll go
  5943  for it."
  5944  
  5945  "Well, I'll come around and maow to-night."
  5946  
  5947  "All right. Let's hide the tools in the bushes."
  5948  
  5949  The boys were there that night, about the appointed time. They sat in
  5950  the shadow waiting. It was a lonely place, and an hour made solemn by
  5951  old traditions. Spirits whispered in the rustling leaves, ghosts lurked
  5952  in the murky nooks, the deep baying of a hound floated up out of the
  5953  distance, an owl answered with his sepulchral note. The boys were
  5954  subdued by these solemnities, and talked little. By and by they judged
  5955  that twelve had come; they marked where the shadow fell, and began to
  5956  dig. Their hopes commenced to rise. Their interest grew stronger, and
  5957  their industry kept pace with it. The hole deepened and still deepened,
  5958  but every time their hearts jumped to hear the pick strike upon
  5959  something, they only suffered a new disappointment. It was only a stone
  5960  or a chunk. At last Tom said:
  5961  
  5962  "It ain't any use, Huck, we're wrong again."
  5963  
  5964  "Well, but we CAN'T be wrong. We spotted the shadder to a dot."
  5965  
  5966  "I know it, but then there's another thing."
  5967  
  5968  "What's that?".
  5969  
  5970  "Why, we only guessed at the time. Like enough it was too late or too
  5971  early."
  5972  
  5973  Huck dropped his shovel.
  5974  
  5975  "That's it," said he. "That's the very trouble. We got to give this
  5976  one up. We can't ever tell the right time, and besides this kind of
  5977  thing's too awful, here this time of night with witches and ghosts
  5978  a-fluttering around so. I feel as if something's behind me all the time;
  5979  and I'm afeard to turn around, becuz maybe there's others in front
  5980  a-waiting for a chance. I been creeping all over, ever since I got here."
  5981  
  5982  "Well, I've been pretty much so, too, Huck. They most always put in a
  5983  dead man when they bury a treasure under a tree, to look out for it."
  5984  
  5985  "Lordy!"
  5986  
  5987  "Yes, they do. I've always heard that."
  5988  
  5989  "Tom, I don't like to fool around much where there's dead people. A
  5990  body's bound to get into trouble with 'em, sure."
  5991  
  5992  "I don't like to stir 'em up, either. S'pose this one here was to
  5993  stick his skull out and say something!"
  5994  
  5995  "Don't Tom! It's awful."
  5996  
  5997  "Well, it just is. Huck, I don't feel comfortable a bit."
  5998  
  5999  "Say, Tom, let's give this place up, and try somewheres else."
  6000  
  6001  "All right, I reckon we better."
  6002  
  6003  "What'll it be?"
  6004  
  6005  Tom considered awhile; and then said:
  6006  
  6007  "The ha'nted house. That's it!"
  6008  
  6009  "Blame it, I don't like ha'nted houses, Tom. Why, they're a dern sight
  6010  worse'n dead people. Dead people might talk, maybe, but they don't come
  6011  sliding around in a shroud, when you ain't noticing, and peep over your
  6012  shoulder all of a sudden and grit their teeth, the way a ghost does. I
  6013  couldn't stand such a thing as that, Tom--nobody could."
  6014  
  6015  "Yes, but, Huck, ghosts don't travel around only at night. They won't
  6016  hender us from digging there in the daytime."
  6017  
  6018  "Well, that's so. But you know mighty well people don't go about that
  6019  ha'nted house in the day nor the night."
  6020  
  6021  "Well, that's mostly because they don't like to go where a man's been
  6022  murdered, anyway--but nothing's ever been seen around that house except
  6023  in the night--just some blue lights slipping by the windows--no regular
  6024  ghosts."
  6025  
  6026  "Well, where you see one of them blue lights flickering around, Tom,
  6027  you can bet there's a ghost mighty close behind it. It stands to
  6028  reason. Becuz you know that they don't anybody but ghosts use 'em."
  6029  
  6030  "Yes, that's so. But anyway they don't come around in the daytime, so
  6031  what's the use of our being afeard?"
  6032  
  6033  "Well, all right. We'll tackle the ha'nted house if you say so--but I
  6034  reckon it's taking chances."
  6035  
  6036  They had started down the hill by this time. There in the middle of
  6037  the moonlit valley below them stood the "ha'nted" house, utterly
  6038  isolated, its fences gone long ago, rank weeds smothering the very
  6039  doorsteps, the chimney crumbled to ruin, the window-sashes vacant, a
  6040  corner of the roof caved in. The boys gazed awhile, half expecting to
  6041  see a blue light flit past a window; then talking in a low tone, as
  6042  befitted the time and the circumstances, they struck far off to the
  6043  right, to give the haunted house a wide berth, and took their way
  6044  homeward through the woods that adorned the rearward side of Cardiff
  6045  Hill.
  6046  
  6047  
  6048  
  6049  CHAPTER XXVI
  6050  
  6051  ABOUT noon the next day the boys arrived at the dead tree; they had
  6052  come for their tools. Tom was impatient to go to the haunted house;
  6053  Huck was measurably so, also--but suddenly said:
  6054  
  6055  "Lookyhere, Tom, do you know what day it is?"
  6056  
  6057  Tom mentally ran over the days of the week, and then quickly lifted
  6058  his eyes with a startled look in them--
  6059  
  6060  "My! I never once thought of it, Huck!"
  6061  
  6062  "Well, I didn't neither, but all at once it popped onto me that it was
  6063  Friday."
  6064  
  6065  "Blame it, a body can't be too careful, Huck. We might 'a' got into an
  6066  awful scrape, tackling such a thing on a Friday."
  6067  
  6068  "MIGHT! Better say we WOULD! There's some lucky days, maybe, but
  6069  Friday ain't."
  6070  
  6071  "Any fool knows that. I don't reckon YOU was the first that found it
  6072  out, Huck."
  6073  
  6074  "Well, I never said I was, did I? And Friday ain't all, neither. I had
  6075  a rotten bad dream last night--dreampt about rats."
  6076  
  6077  "No! Sure sign of trouble. Did they fight?"
  6078  
  6079  "No."
  6080  
  6081  "Well, that's good, Huck. When they don't fight it's only a sign that
  6082  there's trouble around, you know. All we got to do is to look mighty
  6083  sharp and keep out of it. We'll drop this thing for to-day, and play.
  6084  Do you know Robin Hood, Huck?"
  6085  
  6086  "No. Who's Robin Hood?"
  6087  
  6088  "Why, he was one of the greatest men that was ever in England--and the
  6089  best. He was a robber."
  6090  
  6091  "Cracky, I wisht I was. Who did he rob?"
  6092  
  6093  "Only sheriffs and bishops and rich people and kings, and such like.
  6094  But he never bothered the poor. He loved 'em. He always divided up with
  6095  'em perfectly square."
  6096  
  6097  "Well, he must 'a' been a brick."
  6098  
  6099  "I bet you he was, Huck. Oh, he was the noblest man that ever was.
  6100  They ain't any such men now, I can tell you. He could lick any man in
  6101  England, with one hand tied behind him; and he could take his yew bow
  6102  and plug a ten-cent piece every time, a mile and a half."
  6103  
  6104  "What's a YEW bow?"
  6105  
  6106  "I don't know. It's some kind of a bow, of course. And if he hit that
  6107  dime only on the edge he would set down and cry--and curse. But we'll
  6108  play Robin Hood--it's nobby fun. I'll learn you."
  6109  
  6110  "I'm agreed."
  6111  
  6112  So they played Robin Hood all the afternoon, now and then casting a
  6113  yearning eye down upon the haunted house and passing a remark about the
  6114  morrow's prospects and possibilities there. As the sun began to sink
  6115  into the west they took their way homeward athwart the long shadows of
  6116  the trees and soon were buried from sight in the forests of Cardiff
  6117  Hill.
  6118  
  6119  On Saturday, shortly after noon, the boys were at the dead tree again.
  6120  They had a smoke and a chat in the shade, and then dug a little in
  6121  their last hole, not with great hope, but merely because Tom said there
  6122  were so many cases where people had given up a treasure after getting
  6123  down within six inches of it, and then somebody else had come along and
  6124  turned it up with a single thrust of a shovel. The thing failed this
  6125  time, however, so the boys shouldered their tools and went away feeling
  6126  that they had not trifled with fortune, but had fulfilled all the
  6127  requirements that belong to the business of treasure-hunting.
  6128  
  6129  When they reached the haunted house there was something so weird and
  6130  grisly about the dead silence that reigned there under the baking sun,
  6131  and something so depressing about the loneliness and desolation of the
  6132  place, that they were afraid, for a moment, to venture in. Then they
  6133  crept to the door and took a trembling peep. They saw a weed-grown,
  6134  floorless room, unplastered, an ancient fireplace, vacant windows, a
  6135  ruinous staircase; and here, there, and everywhere hung ragged and
  6136  abandoned cobwebs. They presently entered, softly, with quickened
  6137  pulses, talking in whispers, ears alert to catch the slightest sound,
  6138  and muscles tense and ready for instant retreat.
  6139  
  6140  In a little while familiarity modified their fears and they gave the
  6141  place a critical and interested examination, rather admiring their own
  6142  boldness, and wondering at it, too. Next they wanted to look up-stairs.
  6143  This was something like cutting off retreat, but they got to daring
  6144  each other, and of course there could be but one result--they threw
  6145  their tools into a corner and made the ascent. Up there were the same
  6146  signs of decay. In one corner they found a closet that promised
  6147  mystery, but the promise was a fraud--there was nothing in it. Their
  6148  courage was up now and well in hand. They were about to go down and
  6149  begin work when--
  6150  
  6151  "Sh!" said Tom.
  6152  
  6153  "What is it?" whispered Huck, blanching with fright.
  6154  
  6155  "Sh!... There!... Hear it?"
  6156  
  6157  "Yes!... Oh, my! Let's run!"
  6158  
  6159  "Keep still! Don't you budge! They're coming right toward the door."
  6160  
  6161  The boys stretched themselves upon the floor with their eyes to
  6162  knot-holes in the planking, and lay waiting, in a misery of fear.
  6163  
  6164  "They've stopped.... No--coming.... Here they are. Don't whisper
  6165  another word, Huck. My goodness, I wish I was out of this!"
  6166  
  6167  Two men entered. Each boy said to himself: "There's the old deaf and
  6168  dumb Spaniard that's been about town once or twice lately--never saw
  6169  t'other man before."
  6170  
  6171  "T'other" was a ragged, unkempt creature, with nothing very pleasant
  6172  in his face. The Spaniard was wrapped in a serape; he had bushy white
  6173  whiskers; long white hair flowed from under his sombrero, and he wore
  6174  green goggles. When they came in, "t'other" was talking in a low voice;
  6175  they sat down on the ground, facing the door, with their backs to the
  6176  wall, and the speaker continued his remarks. His manner became less
  6177  guarded and his words more distinct as he proceeded:
  6178  
  6179  "No," said he, "I've thought it all over, and I don't like it. It's
  6180  dangerous."
  6181  
  6182  "Dangerous!" grunted the "deaf and dumb" Spaniard--to the vast
  6183  surprise of the boys. "Milksop!"
  6184  
  6185  This voice made the boys gasp and quake. It was Injun Joe's! There was
  6186  silence for some time. Then Joe said:
  6187  
  6188  "What's any more dangerous than that job up yonder--but nothing's come
  6189  of it."
  6190  
  6191  "That's different. Away up the river so, and not another house about.
  6192  'Twon't ever be known that we tried, anyway, long as we didn't succeed."
  6193  
  6194  "Well, what's more dangerous than coming here in the daytime!--anybody
  6195  would suspicion us that saw us."
  6196  
  6197  "I know that. But there warn't any other place as handy after that
  6198  fool of a job. I want to quit this shanty. I wanted to yesterday, only
  6199  it warn't any use trying to stir out of here, with those infernal boys
  6200  playing over there on the hill right in full view."
  6201  
  6202  "Those infernal boys" quaked again under the inspiration of this
  6203  remark, and thought how lucky it was that they had remembered it was
  6204  Friday and concluded to wait a day. They wished in their hearts they
  6205  had waited a year.
  6206  
  6207  The two men got out some food and made a luncheon. After a long and
  6208  thoughtful silence, Injun Joe said:
  6209  
  6210  "Look here, lad--you go back up the river where you belong. Wait there
  6211  till you hear from me. I'll take the chances on dropping into this town
  6212  just once more, for a look. We'll do that 'dangerous' job after I've
  6213  spied around a little and think things look well for it. Then for
  6214  Texas! We'll leg it together!"
  6215  
  6216  This was satisfactory. Both men presently fell to yawning, and Injun
  6217  Joe said:
  6218  
  6219  "I'm dead for sleep! It's your turn to watch."
  6220  
  6221  He curled down in the weeds and soon began to snore. His comrade
  6222  stirred him once or twice and he became quiet. Presently the watcher
  6223  began to nod; his head drooped lower and lower, both men began to snore
  6224  now.
  6225  
  6226  The boys drew a long, grateful breath. Tom whispered:
  6227  
  6228  "Now's our chance--come!"
  6229  
  6230  Huck said:
  6231  
  6232  "I can't--I'd die if they was to wake."
  6233  
  6234  Tom urged--Huck held back. At last Tom rose slowly and softly, and
  6235  started alone. But the first step he made wrung such a hideous creak
  6236  from the crazy floor that he sank down almost dead with fright. He
  6237  never made a second attempt. The boys lay there counting the dragging
  6238  moments till it seemed to them that time must be done and eternity
  6239  growing gray; and then they were grateful to note that at last the sun
  6240  was setting.
  6241  
  6242  Now one snore ceased. Injun Joe sat up, stared around--smiled grimly
  6243  upon his comrade, whose head was drooping upon his knees--stirred him
  6244  up with his foot and said:
  6245  
  6246  "Here! YOU'RE a watchman, ain't you! All right, though--nothing's
  6247  happened."
  6248  
  6249  "My! have I been asleep?"
  6250  
  6251  "Oh, partly, partly. Nearly time for us to be moving, pard. What'll we
  6252  do with what little swag we've got left?"
  6253  
  6254  "I don't know--leave it here as we've always done, I reckon. No use to
  6255  take it away till we start south. Six hundred and fifty in silver's
  6256  something to carry."
  6257  
  6258  "Well--all right--it won't matter to come here once more."
  6259  
  6260  "No--but I'd say come in the night as we used to do--it's better."
  6261  
  6262  "Yes: but look here; it may be a good while before I get the right
  6263  chance at that job; accidents might happen; 'tain't in such a very good
  6264  place; we'll just regularly bury it--and bury it deep."
  6265  
  6266  "Good idea," said the comrade, who walked across the room, knelt down,
  6267  raised one of the rearward hearth-stones and took out a bag that
  6268  jingled pleasantly. He subtracted from it twenty or thirty dollars for
  6269  himself and as much for Injun Joe, and passed the bag to the latter,
  6270  who was on his knees in the corner, now, digging with his bowie-knife.
  6271  
  6272  The boys forgot all their fears, all their miseries in an instant.
  6273  With gloating eyes they watched every movement. Luck!--the splendor of
  6274  it was beyond all imagination! Six hundred dollars was money enough to
  6275  make half a dozen boys rich! Here was treasure-hunting under the
  6276  happiest auspices--there would not be any bothersome uncertainty as to
  6277  where to dig. They nudged each other every moment--eloquent nudges and
  6278  easily understood, for they simply meant--"Oh, but ain't you glad NOW
  6279  we're here!"
  6280  
  6281  Joe's knife struck upon something.
  6282  
  6283  "Hello!" said he.
  6284  
  6285  "What is it?" said his comrade.
  6286  
  6287  "Half-rotten plank--no, it's a box, I believe. Here--bear a hand and
  6288  we'll see what it's here for. Never mind, I've broke a hole."
  6289  
  6290  He reached his hand in and drew it out--
  6291  
  6292  "Man, it's money!"
  6293  
  6294  The two men examined the handful of coins. They were gold. The boys
  6295  above were as excited as themselves, and as delighted.
  6296  
  6297  Joe's comrade said:
  6298  
  6299  "We'll make quick work of this. There's an old rusty pick over amongst
  6300  the weeds in the corner the other side of the fireplace--I saw it a
  6301  minute ago."
  6302  
  6303  He ran and brought the boys' pick and shovel. Injun Joe took the pick,
  6304  looked it over critically, shook his head, muttered something to
  6305  himself, and then began to use it. The box was soon unearthed. It was
  6306  not very large; it was iron bound and had been very strong before the
  6307  slow years had injured it. The men contemplated the treasure awhile in
  6308  blissful silence.
  6309  
  6310  "Pard, there's thousands of dollars here," said Injun Joe.
  6311  
  6312  "'Twas always said that Murrel's gang used to be around here one
  6313  summer," the stranger observed.
  6314  
  6315  "I know it," said Injun Joe; "and this looks like it, I should say."
  6316  
  6317  "Now you won't need to do that job."
  6318  
  6319  The half-breed frowned. Said he:
  6320  
  6321  "You don't know me. Least you don't know all about that thing. 'Tain't
  6322  robbery altogether--it's REVENGE!" and a wicked light flamed in his
  6323  eyes. "I'll need your help in it. When it's finished--then Texas. Go
  6324  home to your Nance and your kids, and stand by till you hear from me."
  6325  
  6326  "Well--if you say so; what'll we do with this--bury it again?"
  6327  
  6328  "Yes. [Ravishing delight overhead.] NO! by the great Sachem, no!
  6329  [Profound distress overhead.] I'd nearly forgot. That pick had fresh
  6330  earth on it! [The boys were sick with terror in a moment.] What
  6331  business has a pick and a shovel here? What business with fresh earth
  6332  on them? Who brought them here--and where are they gone? Have you heard
  6333  anybody?--seen anybody? What! bury it again and leave them to come and
  6334  see the ground disturbed? Not exactly--not exactly. We'll take it to my
  6335  den."
  6336  
  6337  "Why, of course! Might have thought of that before. You mean Number
  6338  One?"
  6339  
  6340  "No--Number Two--under the cross. The other place is bad--too common."
  6341  
  6342  "All right. It's nearly dark enough to start."
  6343  
  6344  Injun Joe got up and went about from window to window cautiously
  6345  peeping out. Presently he said:
  6346  
  6347  "Who could have brought those tools here? Do you reckon they can be
  6348  up-stairs?"
  6349  
  6350  The boys' breath forsook them. Injun Joe put his hand on his knife,
  6351  halted a moment, undecided, and then turned toward the stairway. The
  6352  boys thought of the closet, but their strength was gone. The steps came
  6353  creaking up the stairs--the intolerable distress of the situation woke
  6354  the stricken resolution of the lads--they were about to spring for the
  6355  closet, when there was a crash of rotten timbers and Injun Joe landed
  6356  on the ground amid the debris of the ruined stairway. He gathered
  6357  himself up cursing, and his comrade said:
  6358  
  6359  "Now what's the use of all that? If it's anybody, and they're up
  6360  there, let them STAY there--who cares? If they want to jump down, now,
  6361  and get into trouble, who objects? It will be dark in fifteen minutes
  6362  --and then let them follow us if they want to. I'm willing. In my
  6363  opinion, whoever hove those things in here caught a sight of us and
  6364  took us for ghosts or devils or something. I'll bet they're running
  6365  yet."
  6366  
  6367  Joe grumbled awhile; then he agreed with his friend that what daylight
  6368  was left ought to be economized in getting things ready for leaving.
  6369  Shortly afterward they slipped out of the house in the deepening
  6370  twilight, and moved toward the river with their precious box.
  6371  
  6372  Tom and Huck rose up, weak but vastly relieved, and stared after them
  6373  through the chinks between the logs of the house. Follow? Not they.
  6374  They were content to reach ground again without broken necks, and take
  6375  the townward track over the hill. They did not talk much. They were too
  6376  much absorbed in hating themselves--hating the ill luck that made them
  6377  take the spade and the pick there. But for that, Injun Joe never would
  6378  have suspected. He would have hidden the silver with the gold to wait
  6379  there till his "revenge" was satisfied, and then he would have had the
  6380  misfortune to find that money turn up missing. Bitter, bitter luck that
  6381  the tools were ever brought there!
  6382  
  6383  They resolved to keep a lookout for that Spaniard when he should come
  6384  to town spying out for chances to do his revengeful job, and follow him
  6385  to "Number Two," wherever that might be. Then a ghastly thought
  6386  occurred to Tom.
  6387  
  6388  "Revenge? What if he means US, Huck!"
  6389  
  6390  "Oh, don't!" said Huck, nearly fainting.
  6391  
  6392  They talked it all over, and as they entered town they agreed to
  6393  believe that he might possibly mean somebody else--at least that he
  6394  might at least mean nobody but Tom, since only Tom had testified.
  6395  
  6396  Very, very small comfort it was to Tom to be alone in danger! Company
  6397  would be a palpable improvement, he thought.
  6398  
  6399  
  6400  
  6401  CHAPTER XXVII
  6402  
  6403  THE adventure of the day mightily tormented Tom's dreams that night.
  6404  Four times he had his hands on that rich treasure and four times it
  6405  wasted to nothingness in his fingers as sleep forsook him and
  6406  wakefulness brought back the hard reality of his misfortune. As he lay
  6407  in the early morning recalling the incidents of his great adventure, he
  6408  noticed that they seemed curiously subdued and far away--somewhat as if
  6409  they had happened in another world, or in a time long gone by. Then it
  6410  occurred to him that the great adventure itself must be a dream! There
  6411  was one very strong argument in favor of this idea--namely, that the
  6412  quantity of coin he had seen was too vast to be real. He had never seen
  6413  as much as fifty dollars in one mass before, and he was like all boys
  6414  of his age and station in life, in that he imagined that all references
  6415  to "hundreds" and "thousands" were mere fanciful forms of speech, and
  6416  that no such sums really existed in the world. He never had supposed
  6417  for a moment that so large a sum as a hundred dollars was to be found
  6418  in actual money in any one's possession. If his notions of hidden
  6419  treasure had been analyzed, they would have been found to consist of a
  6420  handful of real dimes and a bushel of vague, splendid, ungraspable
  6421  dollars.
  6422  
  6423  But the incidents of his adventure grew sensibly sharper and clearer
  6424  under the attrition of thinking them over, and so he presently found
  6425  himself leaning to the impression that the thing might not have been a
  6426  dream, after all. This uncertainty must be swept away. He would snatch
  6427  a hurried breakfast and go and find Huck. Huck was sitting on the
  6428  gunwale of a flatboat, listlessly dangling his feet in the water and
  6429  looking very melancholy. Tom concluded to let Huck lead up to the
  6430  subject. If he did not do it, then the adventure would be proved to
  6431  have been only a dream.
  6432  
  6433  "Hello, Huck!"
  6434  
  6435  "Hello, yourself."
  6436  
  6437  Silence, for a minute.
  6438  
  6439  "Tom, if we'd 'a' left the blame tools at the dead tree, we'd 'a' got
  6440  the money. Oh, ain't it awful!"
  6441  
  6442  "'Tain't a dream, then, 'tain't a dream! Somehow I most wish it was.
  6443  Dog'd if I don't, Huck."
  6444  
  6445  "What ain't a dream?"
  6446  
  6447  "Oh, that thing yesterday. I been half thinking it was."
  6448  
  6449  "Dream! If them stairs hadn't broke down you'd 'a' seen how much dream
  6450  it was! I've had dreams enough all night--with that patch-eyed Spanish
  6451  devil going for me all through 'em--rot him!"
  6452  
  6453  "No, not rot him. FIND him! Track the money!"
  6454  
  6455  "Tom, we'll never find him. A feller don't have only one chance for
  6456  such a pile--and that one's lost. I'd feel mighty shaky if I was to see
  6457  him, anyway."
  6458  
  6459  "Well, so'd I; but I'd like to see him, anyway--and track him out--to
  6460  his Number Two."
  6461  
  6462  "Number Two--yes, that's it. I been thinking 'bout that. But I can't
  6463  make nothing out of it. What do you reckon it is?"
  6464  
  6465  "I dono. It's too deep. Say, Huck--maybe it's the number of a house!"
  6466  
  6467  "Goody!... No, Tom, that ain't it. If it is, it ain't in this
  6468  one-horse town. They ain't no numbers here."
  6469  
  6470  "Well, that's so. Lemme think a minute. Here--it's the number of a
  6471  room--in a tavern, you know!"
  6472  
  6473  "Oh, that's the trick! They ain't only two taverns. We can find out
  6474  quick."
  6475  
  6476  "You stay here, Huck, till I come."
  6477  
  6478  Tom was off at once. He did not care to have Huck's company in public
  6479  places. He was gone half an hour. He found that in the best tavern, No.
  6480  2 had long been occupied by a young lawyer, and was still so occupied.
  6481  In the less ostentatious house, No. 2 was a mystery. The
  6482  tavern-keeper's young son said it was kept locked all the time, and he
  6483  never saw anybody go into it or come out of it except at night; he did
  6484  not know any particular reason for this state of things; had had some
  6485  little curiosity, but it was rather feeble; had made the most of the
  6486  mystery by entertaining himself with the idea that that room was
  6487  "ha'nted"; had noticed that there was a light in there the night before.
  6488  
  6489  "That's what I've found out, Huck. I reckon that's the very No. 2
  6490  we're after."
  6491  
  6492  "I reckon it is, Tom. Now what you going to do?"
  6493  
  6494  "Lemme think."
  6495  
  6496  Tom thought a long time. Then he said:
  6497  
  6498  "I'll tell you. The back door of that No. 2 is the door that comes out
  6499  into that little close alley between the tavern and the old rattle trap
  6500  of a brick store. Now you get hold of all the door-keys you can find,
  6501  and I'll nip all of auntie's, and the first dark night we'll go there
  6502  and try 'em. And mind you, keep a lookout for Injun Joe, because he
  6503  said he was going to drop into town and spy around once more for a
  6504  chance to get his revenge. If you see him, you just follow him; and if
  6505  he don't go to that No. 2, that ain't the place."
  6506  
  6507  "Lordy, I don't want to foller him by myself!"
  6508  
  6509  "Why, it'll be night, sure. He mightn't ever see you--and if he did,
  6510  maybe he'd never think anything."
  6511  
  6512  "Well, if it's pretty dark I reckon I'll track him. I dono--I dono.
  6513  I'll try."
  6514  
  6515  "You bet I'll follow him, if it's dark, Huck. Why, he might 'a' found
  6516  out he couldn't get his revenge, and be going right after that money."
  6517  
  6518  "It's so, Tom, it's so. I'll foller him; I will, by jingoes!"
  6519  
  6520  "Now you're TALKING! Don't you ever weaken, Huck, and I won't."
  6521  
  6522  
  6523  
  6524  CHAPTER XXVIII
  6525  
  6526  THAT night Tom and Huck were ready for their adventure. They hung
  6527  about the neighborhood of the tavern until after nine, one watching the
  6528  alley at a distance and the other the tavern door. Nobody entered the
  6529  alley or left it; nobody resembling the Spaniard entered or left the
  6530  tavern door. The night promised to be a fair one; so Tom went home with
  6531  the understanding that if a considerable degree of darkness came on,
  6532  Huck was to come and "maow," whereupon he would slip out and try the
  6533  keys. But the night remained clear, and Huck closed his watch and
  6534  retired to bed in an empty sugar hogshead about twelve.
  6535  
  6536  Tuesday the boys had the same ill luck. Also Wednesday. But Thursday
  6537  night promised better. Tom slipped out in good season with his aunt's
  6538  old tin lantern, and a large towel to blindfold it with. He hid the
  6539  lantern in Huck's sugar hogshead and the watch began. An hour before
  6540  midnight the tavern closed up and its lights (the only ones
  6541  thereabouts) were put out. No Spaniard had been seen. Nobody had
  6542  entered or left the alley. Everything was auspicious. The blackness of
  6543  darkness reigned, the perfect stillness was interrupted only by
  6544  occasional mutterings of distant thunder.
  6545  
  6546  Tom got his lantern, lit it in the hogshead, wrapped it closely in the
  6547  towel, and the two adventurers crept in the gloom toward the tavern.
  6548  Huck stood sentry and Tom felt his way into the alley. Then there was a
  6549  season of waiting anxiety that weighed upon Huck's spirits like a
  6550  mountain. He began to wish he could see a flash from the lantern--it
  6551  would frighten him, but it would at least tell him that Tom was alive
  6552  yet. It seemed hours since Tom had disappeared. Surely he must have
  6553  fainted; maybe he was dead; maybe his heart had burst under terror and
  6554  excitement. In his uneasiness Huck found himself drawing closer and
  6555  closer to the alley; fearing all sorts of dreadful things, and
  6556  momentarily expecting some catastrophe to happen that would take away
  6557  his breath. There was not much to take away, for he seemed only able to
  6558  inhale it by thimblefuls, and his heart would soon wear itself out, the
  6559  way it was beating. Suddenly there was a flash of light and Tom came
  6560  tearing by him: "Run!" said he; "run, for your life!"
  6561  
  6562  He needn't have repeated it; once was enough; Huck was making thirty
  6563  or forty miles an hour before the repetition was uttered. The boys
  6564  never stopped till they reached the shed of a deserted slaughter-house
  6565  at the lower end of the village. Just as they got within its shelter
  6566  the storm burst and the rain poured down. As soon as Tom got his breath
  6567  he said:
  6568  
  6569  "Huck, it was awful! I tried two of the keys, just as soft as I could;
  6570  but they seemed to make such a power of racket that I couldn't hardly
  6571  get my breath I was so scared. They wouldn't turn in the lock, either.
  6572  Well, without noticing what I was doing, I took hold of the knob, and
  6573  open comes the door! It warn't locked! I hopped in, and shook off the
  6574  towel, and, GREAT CAESAR'S GHOST!"
  6575  
  6576  "What!--what'd you see, Tom?"
  6577  
  6578  "Huck, I most stepped onto Injun Joe's hand!"
  6579  
  6580  "No!"
  6581  
  6582  "Yes! He was lying there, sound asleep on the floor, with his old
  6583  patch on his eye and his arms spread out."
  6584  
  6585  "Lordy, what did you do? Did he wake up?"
  6586  
  6587  "No, never budged. Drunk, I reckon. I just grabbed that towel and
  6588  started!"
  6589  
  6590  "I'd never 'a' thought of the towel, I bet!"
  6591  
  6592  "Well, I would. My aunt would make me mighty sick if I lost it."
  6593  
  6594  "Say, Tom, did you see that box?"
  6595  
  6596  "Huck, I didn't wait to look around. I didn't see the box, I didn't
  6597  see the cross. I didn't see anything but a bottle and a tin cup on the
  6598  floor by Injun Joe; yes, I saw two barrels and lots more bottles in the
  6599  room. Don't you see, now, what's the matter with that ha'nted room?"
  6600  
  6601  "How?"
  6602  
  6603  "Why, it's ha'nted with whiskey! Maybe ALL the Temperance Taverns have
  6604  got a ha'nted room, hey, Huck?"
  6605  
  6606  "Well, I reckon maybe that's so. Who'd 'a' thought such a thing? But
  6607  say, Tom, now's a mighty good time to get that box, if Injun Joe's
  6608  drunk."
  6609  
  6610  "It is, that! You try it!"
  6611  
  6612  Huck shuddered.
  6613  
  6614  "Well, no--I reckon not."
  6615  
  6616  "And I reckon not, Huck. Only one bottle alongside of Injun Joe ain't
  6617  enough. If there'd been three, he'd be drunk enough and I'd do it."
  6618  
  6619  There was a long pause for reflection, and then Tom said:
  6620  
  6621  "Lookyhere, Huck, less not try that thing any more till we know Injun
  6622  Joe's not in there. It's too scary. Now, if we watch every night, we'll
  6623  be dead sure to see him go out, some time or other, and then we'll
  6624  snatch that box quicker'n lightning."
  6625  
  6626  "Well, I'm agreed. I'll watch the whole night long, and I'll do it
  6627  every night, too, if you'll do the other part of the job."
  6628  
  6629  "All right, I will. All you got to do is to trot up Hooper Street a
  6630  block and maow--and if I'm asleep, you throw some gravel at the window
  6631  and that'll fetch me."
  6632  
  6633  "Agreed, and good as wheat!"
  6634  
  6635  "Now, Huck, the storm's over, and I'll go home. It'll begin to be
  6636  daylight in a couple of hours. You go back and watch that long, will
  6637  you?"
  6638  
  6639  "I said I would, Tom, and I will. I'll ha'nt that tavern every night
  6640  for a year! I'll sleep all day and I'll stand watch all night."
  6641  
  6642  "That's all right. Now, where you going to sleep?"
  6643  
  6644  "In Ben Rogers' hayloft. He lets me, and so does his pap's nigger man,
  6645  Uncle Jake. I tote water for Uncle Jake whenever he wants me to, and
  6646  any time I ask him he gives me a little something to eat if he can
  6647  spare it. That's a mighty good nigger, Tom. He likes me, becuz I don't
  6648  ever act as if I was above him. Sometime I've set right down and eat
  6649  WITH him. But you needn't tell that. A body's got to do things when
  6650  he's awful hungry he wouldn't want to do as a steady thing."
  6651  
  6652  "Well, if I don't want you in the daytime, I'll let you sleep. I won't
  6653  come bothering around. Any time you see something's up, in the night,
  6654  just skip right around and maow."
  6655  
  6656  
  6657  
  6658  CHAPTER XXIX
  6659  
  6660  THE first thing Tom heard on Friday morning was a glad piece of news
  6661  --Judge Thatcher's family had come back to town the night before. Both
  6662  Injun Joe and the treasure sunk into secondary importance for a moment,
  6663  and Becky took the chief place in the boy's interest. He saw her and
  6664  they had an exhausting good time playing "hi-spy" and "gully-keeper"
  6665  with a crowd of their school-mates. The day was completed and crowned
  6666  in a peculiarly satisfactory way: Becky teased her mother to appoint
  6667  the next day for the long-promised and long-delayed picnic, and she
  6668  consented. The child's delight was boundless; and Tom's not more
  6669  moderate. The invitations were sent out before sunset, and straightway
  6670  the young folks of the village were thrown into a fever of preparation
  6671  and pleasurable anticipation. Tom's excitement enabled him to keep
  6672  awake until a pretty late hour, and he had good hopes of hearing Huck's
  6673  "maow," and of having his treasure to astonish Becky and the picnickers
  6674  with, next day; but he was disappointed. No signal came that night.
  6675  
  6676  Morning came, eventually, and by ten or eleven o'clock a giddy and
  6677  rollicking company were gathered at Judge Thatcher's, and everything
  6678  was ready for a start. It was not the custom for elderly people to mar
  6679  the picnics with their presence. The children were considered safe
  6680  enough under the wings of a few young ladies of eighteen and a few
  6681  young gentlemen of twenty-three or thereabouts. The old steam ferryboat
  6682  was chartered for the occasion; presently the gay throng filed up the
  6683  main street laden with provision-baskets. Sid was sick and had to miss
  6684  the fun; Mary remained at home to entertain him. The last thing Mrs.
  6685  Thatcher said to Becky, was:
  6686  
  6687  "You'll not get back till late. Perhaps you'd better stay all night
  6688  with some of the girls that live near the ferry-landing, child."
  6689  
  6690  "Then I'll stay with Susy Harper, mamma."
  6691  
  6692  "Very well. And mind and behave yourself and don't be any trouble."
  6693  
  6694  Presently, as they tripped along, Tom said to Becky:
  6695  
  6696  "Say--I'll tell you what we'll do. 'Stead of going to Joe Harper's
  6697  we'll climb right up the hill and stop at the Widow Douglas'. She'll
  6698  have ice-cream! She has it most every day--dead loads of it. And she'll
  6699  be awful glad to have us."
  6700  
  6701  "Oh, that will be fun!"
  6702  
  6703  Then Becky reflected a moment and said:
  6704  
  6705  "But what will mamma say?"
  6706  
  6707  "How'll she ever know?"
  6708  
  6709  The girl turned the idea over in her mind, and said reluctantly:
  6710  
  6711  "I reckon it's wrong--but--"
  6712  
  6713  "But shucks! Your mother won't know, and so what's the harm? All she
  6714  wants is that you'll be safe; and I bet you she'd 'a' said go there if
  6715  she'd 'a' thought of it. I know she would!"
  6716  
  6717  The Widow Douglas' splendid hospitality was a tempting bait. It and
  6718  Tom's persuasions presently carried the day. So it was decided to say
  6719  nothing anybody about the night's programme. Presently it occurred to
  6720  Tom that maybe Huck might come this very night and give the signal. The
  6721  thought took a deal of the spirit out of his anticipations. Still he
  6722  could not bear to give up the fun at Widow Douglas'. And why should he
  6723  give it up, he reasoned--the signal did not come the night before, so
  6724  why should it be any more likely to come to-night? The sure fun of the
  6725  evening outweighed the uncertain treasure; and, boy-like, he determined
  6726  to yield to the stronger inclination and not allow himself to think of
  6727  the box of money another time that day.
  6728  
  6729  Three miles below town the ferryboat stopped at the mouth of a woody
  6730  hollow and tied up. The crowd swarmed ashore and soon the forest
  6731  distances and craggy heights echoed far and near with shoutings and
  6732  laughter. All the different ways of getting hot and tired were gone
  6733  through with, and by-and-by the rovers straggled back to camp fortified
  6734  with responsible appetites, and then the destruction of the good things
  6735  began. After the feast there was a refreshing season of rest and chat
  6736  in the shade of spreading oaks. By-and-by somebody shouted:
  6737  
  6738  "Who's ready for the cave?"
  6739  
  6740  Everybody was. Bundles of candles were procured, and straightway there
  6741  was a general scamper up the hill. The mouth of the cave was up the
  6742  hillside--an opening shaped like a letter A. Its massive oaken door
  6743  stood unbarred. Within was a small chamber, chilly as an ice-house, and
  6744  walled by Nature with solid limestone that was dewy with a cold sweat.
  6745  It was romantic and mysterious to stand here in the deep gloom and look
  6746  out upon the green valley shining in the sun. But the impressiveness of
  6747  the situation quickly wore off, and the romping began again. The moment
  6748  a candle was lighted there was a general rush upon the owner of it; a
  6749  struggle and a gallant defence followed, but the candle was soon
  6750  knocked down or blown out, and then there was a glad clamor of laughter
  6751  and a new chase. But all things have an end. By-and-by the procession
  6752  went filing down the steep descent of the main avenue, the flickering
  6753  rank of lights dimly revealing the lofty walls of rock almost to their
  6754  point of junction sixty feet overhead. This main avenue was not more
  6755  than eight or ten feet wide. Every few steps other lofty and still
  6756  narrower crevices branched from it on either hand--for McDougal's cave
  6757  was but a vast labyrinth of crooked aisles that ran into each other and
  6758  out again and led nowhere. It was said that one might wander days and
  6759  nights together through its intricate tangle of rifts and chasms, and
  6760  never find the end of the cave; and that he might go down, and down,
  6761  and still down, into the earth, and it was just the same--labyrinth
  6762  under labyrinth, and no end to any of them. No man "knew" the cave.
  6763  That was an impossible thing. Most of the young men knew a portion of
  6764  it, and it was not customary to venture much beyond this known portion.
  6765  Tom Sawyer knew as much of the cave as any one.
  6766  
  6767  The procession moved along the main avenue some three-quarters of a
  6768  mile, and then groups and couples began to slip aside into branch
  6769  avenues, fly along the dismal corridors, and take each other by
  6770  surprise at points where the corridors joined again. Parties were able
  6771  to elude each other for the space of half an hour without going beyond
  6772  the "known" ground.
  6773  
  6774  By-and-by, one group after another came straggling back to the mouth
  6775  of the cave, panting, hilarious, smeared from head to foot with tallow
  6776  drippings, daubed with clay, and entirely delighted with the success of
  6777  the day. Then they were astonished to find that they had been taking no
  6778  note of time and that night was about at hand. The clanging bell had
  6779  been calling for half an hour. However, this sort of close to the day's
  6780  adventures was romantic and therefore satisfactory. When the ferryboat
  6781  with her wild freight pushed into the stream, nobody cared sixpence for
  6782  the wasted time but the captain of the craft.
  6783  
  6784  Huck was already upon his watch when the ferryboat's lights went
  6785  glinting past the wharf. He heard no noise on board, for the young
  6786  people were as subdued and still as people usually are who are nearly
  6787  tired to death. He wondered what boat it was, and why she did not stop
  6788  at the wharf--and then he dropped her out of his mind and put his
  6789  attention upon his business. The night was growing cloudy and dark. Ten
  6790  o'clock came, and the noise of vehicles ceased, scattered lights began
  6791  to wink out, all straggling foot-passengers disappeared, the village
  6792  betook itself to its slumbers and left the small watcher alone with the
  6793  silence and the ghosts. Eleven o'clock came, and the tavern lights were
  6794  put out; darkness everywhere, now. Huck waited what seemed a weary long
  6795  time, but nothing happened. His faith was weakening. Was there any use?
  6796  Was there really any use? Why not give it up and turn in?
  6797  
  6798  A noise fell upon his ear. He was all attention in an instant. The
  6799  alley door closed softly. He sprang to the corner of the brick store.
  6800  The next moment two men brushed by him, and one seemed to have
  6801  something under his arm. It must be that box! So they were going to
  6802  remove the treasure. Why call Tom now? It would be absurd--the men
  6803  would get away with the box and never be found again. No, he would
  6804  stick to their wake and follow them; he would trust to the darkness for
  6805  security from discovery. So communing with himself, Huck stepped out
  6806  and glided along behind the men, cat-like, with bare feet, allowing
  6807  them to keep just far enough ahead not to be invisible.
  6808  
  6809  They moved up the river street three blocks, then turned to the left
  6810  up a cross-street. They went straight ahead, then, until they came to
  6811  the path that led up Cardiff Hill; this they took. They passed by the
  6812  old Welshman's house, half-way up the hill, without hesitating, and
  6813  still climbed upward. Good, thought Huck, they will bury it in the old
  6814  quarry. But they never stopped at the quarry. They passed on, up the
  6815  summit. They plunged into the narrow path between the tall sumach
  6816  bushes, and were at once hidden in the gloom. Huck closed up and
  6817  shortened his distance, now, for they would never be able to see him.
  6818  He trotted along awhile; then slackened his pace, fearing he was
  6819  gaining too fast; moved on a piece, then stopped altogether; listened;
  6820  no sound; none, save that he seemed to hear the beating of his own
  6821  heart. The hooting of an owl came over the hill--ominous sound! But no
  6822  footsteps. Heavens, was everything lost! He was about to spring with
  6823  winged feet, when a man cleared his throat not four feet from him!
  6824  Huck's heart shot into his throat, but he swallowed it again; and then
  6825  he stood there shaking as if a dozen agues had taken charge of him at
  6826  once, and so weak that he thought he must surely fall to the ground. He
  6827  knew where he was. He knew he was within five steps of the stile
  6828  leading into Widow Douglas' grounds. Very well, he thought, let them
  6829  bury it there; it won't be hard to find.
  6830  
  6831  Now there was a voice--a very low voice--Injun Joe's:
  6832  
  6833  "Damn her, maybe she's got company--there's lights, late as it is."
  6834  
  6835  "I can't see any."
  6836  
  6837  This was that stranger's voice--the stranger of the haunted house. A
  6838  deadly chill went to Huck's heart--this, then, was the "revenge" job!
  6839  His thought was, to fly. Then he remembered that the Widow Douglas had
  6840  been kind to him more than once, and maybe these men were going to
  6841  murder her. He wished he dared venture to warn her; but he knew he
  6842  didn't dare--they might come and catch him. He thought all this and
  6843  more in the moment that elapsed between the stranger's remark and Injun
  6844  Joe's next--which was--
  6845  
  6846  "Because the bush is in your way. Now--this way--now you see, don't
  6847  you?"
  6848  
  6849  "Yes. Well, there IS company there, I reckon. Better give it up."
  6850  
  6851  "Give it up, and I just leaving this country forever! Give it up and
  6852  maybe never have another chance. I tell you again, as I've told you
  6853  before, I don't care for her swag--you may have it. But her husband was
  6854  rough on me--many times he was rough on me--and mainly he was the
  6855  justice of the peace that jugged me for a vagrant. And that ain't all.
  6856  It ain't a millionth part of it! He had me HORSEWHIPPED!--horsewhipped
  6857  in front of the jail, like a nigger!--with all the town looking on!
  6858  HORSEWHIPPED!--do you understand? He took advantage of me and died. But
  6859  I'll take it out of HER."
  6860  
  6861  "Oh, don't kill her! Don't do that!"
  6862  
  6863  "Kill? Who said anything about killing? I would kill HIM if he was
  6864  here; but not her. When you want to get revenge on a woman you don't
  6865  kill her--bosh! you go for her looks. You slit her nostrils--you notch
  6866  her ears like a sow!"
  6867  
  6868  "By God, that's--"
  6869  
  6870  "Keep your opinion to yourself! It will be safest for you. I'll tie
  6871  her to the bed. If she bleeds to death, is that my fault? I'll not cry,
  6872  if she does. My friend, you'll help me in this thing--for MY sake
  6873  --that's why you're here--I mightn't be able alone. If you flinch, I'll
  6874  kill you. Do you understand that? And if I have to kill you, I'll kill
  6875  her--and then I reckon nobody'll ever know much about who done this
  6876  business."
  6877  
  6878  "Well, if it's got to be done, let's get at it. The quicker the
  6879  better--I'm all in a shiver."
  6880  
  6881  "Do it NOW? And company there? Look here--I'll get suspicious of you,
  6882  first thing you know. No--we'll wait till the lights are out--there's
  6883  no hurry."
  6884  
  6885  Huck felt that a silence was going to ensue--a thing still more awful
  6886  than any amount of murderous talk; so he held his breath and stepped
  6887  gingerly back; planted his foot carefully and firmly, after balancing,
  6888  one-legged, in a precarious way and almost toppling over, first on one
  6889  side and then on the other. He took another step back, with the same
  6890  elaboration and the same risks; then another and another, and--a twig
  6891  snapped under his foot! His breath stopped and he listened. There was
  6892  no sound--the stillness was perfect. His gratitude was measureless. Now
  6893  he turned in his tracks, between the walls of sumach bushes--turned
  6894  himself as carefully as if he were a ship--and then stepped quickly but
  6895  cautiously along. When he emerged at the quarry he felt secure, and so
  6896  he picked up his nimble heels and flew. Down, down he sped, till he
  6897  reached the Welshman's. He banged at the door, and presently the heads
  6898  of the old man and his two stalwart sons were thrust from windows.
  6899  
  6900  "What's the row there? Who's banging? What do you want?"
  6901  
  6902  "Let me in--quick! I'll tell everything."
  6903  
  6904  "Why, who are you?"
  6905  
  6906  "Huckleberry Finn--quick, let me in!"
  6907  
  6908  "Huckleberry Finn, indeed! It ain't a name to open many doors, I
  6909  judge! But let him in, lads, and let's see what's the trouble."
  6910  
  6911  "Please don't ever tell I told you," were Huck's first words when he
  6912  got in. "Please don't--I'd be killed, sure--but the widow's been good
  6913  friends to me sometimes, and I want to tell--I WILL tell if you'll
  6914  promise you won't ever say it was me."
  6915  
  6916  "By George, he HAS got something to tell, or he wouldn't act so!"
  6917  exclaimed the old man; "out with it and nobody here'll ever tell, lad."
  6918  
  6919  Three minutes later the old man and his sons, well armed, were up the
  6920  hill, and just entering the sumach path on tiptoe, their weapons in
  6921  their hands. Huck accompanied them no further. He hid behind a great
  6922  bowlder and fell to listening. There was a lagging, anxious silence,
  6923  and then all of a sudden there was an explosion of firearms and a cry.
  6924  
  6925  Huck waited for no particulars. He sprang away and sped down the hill
  6926  as fast as his legs could carry him.
  6927  
  6928  
  6929  
  6930  CHAPTER XXX
  6931  
  6932  AS the earliest suspicion of dawn appeared on Sunday morning, Huck
  6933  came groping up the hill and rapped gently at the old Welshman's door.
  6934  The inmates were asleep, but it was a sleep that was set on a
  6935  hair-trigger, on account of the exciting episode of the night. A call
  6936  came from a window:
  6937  
  6938  "Who's there!"
  6939  
  6940  Huck's scared voice answered in a low tone:
  6941  
  6942  "Please let me in! It's only Huck Finn!"
  6943  
  6944  "It's a name that can open this door night or day, lad!--and welcome!"
  6945  
  6946  These were strange words to the vagabond boy's ears, and the
  6947  pleasantest he had ever heard. He could not recollect that the closing
  6948  word had ever been applied in his case before. The door was quickly
  6949  unlocked, and he entered. Huck was given a seat and the old man and his
  6950  brace of tall sons speedily dressed themselves.
  6951  
  6952  "Now, my boy, I hope you're good and hungry, because breakfast will be
  6953  ready as soon as the sun's up, and we'll have a piping hot one, too
  6954  --make yourself easy about that! I and the boys hoped you'd turn up and
  6955  stop here last night."
  6956  
  6957  "I was awful scared," said Huck, "and I run. I took out when the
  6958  pistols went off, and I didn't stop for three mile. I've come now becuz
  6959  I wanted to know about it, you know; and I come before daylight becuz I
  6960  didn't want to run across them devils, even if they was dead."
  6961  
  6962  "Well, poor chap, you do look as if you'd had a hard night of it--but
  6963  there's a bed here for you when you've had your breakfast. No, they
  6964  ain't dead, lad--we are sorry enough for that. You see we knew right
  6965  where to put our hands on them, by your description; so we crept along
  6966  on tiptoe till we got within fifteen feet of them--dark as a cellar
  6967  that sumach path was--and just then I found I was going to sneeze. It
  6968  was the meanest kind of luck! I tried to keep it back, but no use
  6969  --'twas bound to come, and it did come! I was in the lead with my pistol
  6970  raised, and when the sneeze started those scoundrels a-rustling to get
  6971  out of the path, I sung out, 'Fire boys!' and blazed away at the place
  6972  where the rustling was. So did the boys. But they were off in a jiffy,
  6973  those villains, and we after them, down through the woods. I judge we
  6974  never touched them. They fired a shot apiece as they started, but their
  6975  bullets whizzed by and didn't do us any harm. As soon as we lost the
  6976  sound of their feet we quit chasing, and went down and stirred up the
  6977  constables. They got a posse together, and went off to guard the river
  6978  bank, and as soon as it is light the sheriff and a gang are going to
  6979  beat up the woods. My boys will be with them presently. I wish we had
  6980  some sort of description of those rascals--'twould help a good deal.
  6981  But you couldn't see what they were like, in the dark, lad, I suppose?"
  6982  
  6983  "Oh yes; I saw them down-town and follered them."
  6984  
  6985  "Splendid! Describe them--describe them, my boy!"
  6986  
  6987  "One's the old deaf and dumb Spaniard that's ben around here once or
  6988  twice, and t'other's a mean-looking, ragged--"
  6989  
  6990  "That's enough, lad, we know the men! Happened on them in the woods
  6991  back of the widow's one day, and they slunk away. Off with you, boys,
  6992  and tell the sheriff--get your breakfast to-morrow morning!"
  6993  
  6994  The Welshman's sons departed at once. As they were leaving the room
  6995  Huck sprang up and exclaimed:
  6996  
  6997  "Oh, please don't tell ANYbody it was me that blowed on them! Oh,
  6998  please!"
  6999  
  7000  "All right if you say it, Huck, but you ought to have the credit of
  7001  what you did."
  7002  
  7003  "Oh no, no! Please don't tell!"
  7004  
  7005  When the young men were gone, the old Welshman said:
  7006  
  7007  "They won't tell--and I won't. But why don't you want it known?"
  7008  
  7009  Huck would not explain, further than to say that he already knew too
  7010  much about one of those men and would not have the man know that he
  7011  knew anything against him for the whole world--he would be killed for
  7012  knowing it, sure.
  7013  
  7014  The old man promised secrecy once more, and said:
  7015  
  7016  "How did you come to follow these fellows, lad? Were they looking
  7017  suspicious?"
  7018  
  7019  Huck was silent while he framed a duly cautious reply. Then he said:
  7020  
  7021  "Well, you see, I'm a kind of a hard lot,--least everybody says so,
  7022  and I don't see nothing agin it--and sometimes I can't sleep much, on
  7023  account of thinking about it and sort of trying to strike out a new way
  7024  of doing. That was the way of it last night. I couldn't sleep, and so I
  7025  come along up-street 'bout midnight, a-turning it all over, and when I
  7026  got to that old shackly brick store by the Temperance Tavern, I backed
  7027  up agin the wall to have another think. Well, just then along comes
  7028  these two chaps slipping along close by me, with something under their
  7029  arm, and I reckoned they'd stole it. One was a-smoking, and t'other one
  7030  wanted a light; so they stopped right before me and the cigars lit up
  7031  their faces and I see that the big one was the deaf and dumb Spaniard,
  7032  by his white whiskers and the patch on his eye, and t'other one was a
  7033  rusty, ragged-looking devil."
  7034  
  7035  "Could you see the rags by the light of the cigars?"
  7036  
  7037  This staggered Huck for a moment. Then he said:
  7038  
  7039  "Well, I don't know--but somehow it seems as if I did."
  7040  
  7041  "Then they went on, and you--"
  7042  
  7043  "Follered 'em--yes. That was it. I wanted to see what was up--they
  7044  sneaked along so. I dogged 'em to the widder's stile, and stood in the
  7045  dark and heard the ragged one beg for the widder, and the Spaniard
  7046  swear he'd spile her looks just as I told you and your two--"
  7047  
  7048  "What! The DEAF AND DUMB man said all that!"
  7049  
  7050  Huck had made another terrible mistake! He was trying his best to keep
  7051  the old man from getting the faintest hint of who the Spaniard might
  7052  be, and yet his tongue seemed determined to get him into trouble in
  7053  spite of all he could do. He made several efforts to creep out of his
  7054  scrape, but the old man's eye was upon him and he made blunder after
  7055  blunder. Presently the Welshman said:
  7056  
  7057  "My boy, don't be afraid of me. I wouldn't hurt a hair of your head
  7058  for all the world. No--I'd protect you--I'd protect you. This Spaniard
  7059  is not deaf and dumb; you've let that slip without intending it; you
  7060  can't cover that up now. You know something about that Spaniard that
  7061  you want to keep dark. Now trust me--tell me what it is, and trust me
  7062  --I won't betray you."
  7063  
  7064  Huck looked into the old man's honest eyes a moment, then bent over
  7065  and whispered in his ear:
  7066  
  7067  "'Tain't a Spaniard--it's Injun Joe!"
  7068  
  7069  The Welshman almost jumped out of his chair. In a moment he said:
  7070  
  7071  "It's all plain enough, now. When you talked about notching ears and
  7072  slitting noses I judged that that was your own embellishment, because
  7073  white men don't take that sort of revenge. But an Injun! That's a
  7074  different matter altogether."
  7075  
  7076  During breakfast the talk went on, and in the course of it the old man
  7077  said that the last thing which he and his sons had done, before going
  7078  to bed, was to get a lantern and examine the stile and its vicinity for
  7079  marks of blood. They found none, but captured a bulky bundle of--
  7080  
  7081  "Of WHAT?"
  7082  
  7083  If the words had been lightning they could not have leaped with a more
  7084  stunning suddenness from Huck's blanched lips. His eyes were staring
  7085  wide, now, and his breath suspended--waiting for the answer. The
  7086  Welshman started--stared in return--three seconds--five seconds--ten
  7087  --then replied:
  7088  
  7089  "Of burglar's tools. Why, what's the MATTER with you?"
  7090  
  7091  Huck sank back, panting gently, but deeply, unutterably grateful. The
  7092  Welshman eyed him gravely, curiously--and presently said:
  7093  
  7094  "Yes, burglar's tools. That appears to relieve you a good deal. But
  7095  what did give you that turn? What were YOU expecting we'd found?"
  7096  
  7097  Huck was in a close place--the inquiring eye was upon him--he would
  7098  have given anything for material for a plausible answer--nothing
  7099  suggested itself--the inquiring eye was boring deeper and deeper--a
  7100  senseless reply offered--there was no time to weigh it, so at a venture
  7101  he uttered it--feebly:
  7102  
  7103  "Sunday-school books, maybe."
  7104  
  7105  Poor Huck was too distressed to smile, but the old man laughed loud
  7106  and joyously, shook up the details of his anatomy from head to foot,
  7107  and ended by saying that such a laugh was money in a-man's pocket,
  7108  because it cut down the doctor's bill like everything. Then he added:
  7109  
  7110  "Poor old chap, you're white and jaded--you ain't well a bit--no
  7111  wonder you're a little flighty and off your balance. But you'll come
  7112  out of it. Rest and sleep will fetch you out all right, I hope."
  7113  
  7114  Huck was irritated to think he had been such a goose and betrayed such
  7115  a suspicious excitement, for he had dropped the idea that the parcel
  7116  brought from the tavern was the treasure, as soon as he had heard the
  7117  talk at the widow's stile. He had only thought it was not the treasure,
  7118  however--he had not known that it wasn't--and so the suggestion of a
  7119  captured bundle was too much for his self-possession. But on the whole
  7120  he felt glad the little episode had happened, for now he knew beyond
  7121  all question that that bundle was not THE bundle, and so his mind was
  7122  at rest and exceedingly comfortable. In fact, everything seemed to be
  7123  drifting just in the right direction, now; the treasure must be still
  7124  in No. 2, the men would be captured and jailed that day, and he and Tom
  7125  could seize the gold that night without any trouble or any fear of
  7126  interruption.
  7127  
  7128  Just as breakfast was completed there was a knock at the door. Huck
  7129  jumped for a hiding-place, for he had no mind to be connected even
  7130  remotely with the late event. The Welshman admitted several ladies and
  7131  gentlemen, among them the Widow Douglas, and noticed that groups of
  7132  citizens were climbing up the hill--to stare at the stile. So the news
  7133  had spread. The Welshman had to tell the story of the night to the
  7134  visitors. The widow's gratitude for her preservation was outspoken.
  7135  
  7136  "Don't say a word about it, madam. There's another that you're more
  7137  beholden to than you are to me and my boys, maybe, but he don't allow
  7138  me to tell his name. We wouldn't have been there but for him."
  7139  
  7140  Of course this excited a curiosity so vast that it almost belittled
  7141  the main matter--but the Welshman allowed it to eat into the vitals of
  7142  his visitors, and through them be transmitted to the whole town, for he
  7143  refused to part with his secret. When all else had been learned, the
  7144  widow said:
  7145  
  7146  "I went to sleep reading in bed and slept straight through all that
  7147  noise. Why didn't you come and wake me?"
  7148  
  7149  "We judged it warn't worth while. Those fellows warn't likely to come
  7150  again--they hadn't any tools left to work with, and what was the use of
  7151  waking you up and scaring you to death? My three negro men stood guard
  7152  at your house all the rest of the night. They've just come back."
  7153  
  7154  More visitors came, and the story had to be told and retold for a
  7155  couple of hours more.
  7156  
  7157  There was no Sabbath-school during day-school vacation, but everybody
  7158  was early at church. The stirring event was well canvassed. News came
  7159  that not a sign of the two villains had been yet discovered. When the
  7160  sermon was finished, Judge Thatcher's wife dropped alongside of Mrs.
  7161  Harper as she moved down the aisle with the crowd and said:
  7162  
  7163  "Is my Becky going to sleep all day? I just expected she would be
  7164  tired to death."
  7165  
  7166  "Your Becky?"
  7167  
  7168  "Yes," with a startled look--"didn't she stay with you last night?"
  7169  
  7170  "Why, no."
  7171  
  7172  Mrs. Thatcher turned pale, and sank into a pew, just as Aunt Polly,
  7173  talking briskly with a friend, passed by. Aunt Polly said:
  7174  
  7175  "Good-morning, Mrs. Thatcher. Good-morning, Mrs. Harper. I've got a
  7176  boy that's turned up missing. I reckon my Tom stayed at your house last
  7177  night--one of you. And now he's afraid to come to church. I've got to
  7178  settle with him."
  7179  
  7180  Mrs. Thatcher shook her head feebly and turned paler than ever.
  7181  
  7182  "He didn't stay with us," said Mrs. Harper, beginning to look uneasy.
  7183  A marked anxiety came into Aunt Polly's face.
  7184  
  7185  "Joe Harper, have you seen my Tom this morning?"
  7186  
  7187  "No'm."
  7188  
  7189  "When did you see him last?"
  7190  
  7191  Joe tried to remember, but was not sure he could say. The people had
  7192  stopped moving out of church. Whispers passed along, and a boding
  7193  uneasiness took possession of every countenance. Children were
  7194  anxiously questioned, and young teachers. They all said they had not
  7195  noticed whether Tom and Becky were on board the ferryboat on the
  7196  homeward trip; it was dark; no one thought of inquiring if any one was
  7197  missing. One young man finally blurted out his fear that they were
  7198  still in the cave! Mrs. Thatcher swooned away. Aunt Polly fell to
  7199  crying and wringing her hands.
  7200  
  7201  The alarm swept from lip to lip, from group to group, from street to
  7202  street, and within five minutes the bells were wildly clanging and the
  7203  whole town was up! The Cardiff Hill episode sank into instant
  7204  insignificance, the burglars were forgotten, horses were saddled,
  7205  skiffs were manned, the ferryboat ordered out, and before the horror
  7206  was half an hour old, two hundred men were pouring down highroad and
  7207  river toward the cave.
  7208  
  7209  All the long afternoon the village seemed empty and dead. Many women
  7210  visited Aunt Polly and Mrs. Thatcher and tried to comfort them. They
  7211  cried with them, too, and that was still better than words. All the
  7212  tedious night the town waited for news; but when the morning dawned at
  7213  last, all the word that came was, "Send more candles--and send food."
  7214  Mrs. Thatcher was almost crazed; and Aunt Polly, also. Judge Thatcher
  7215  sent messages of hope and encouragement from the cave, but they
  7216  conveyed no real cheer.
  7217  
  7218  The old Welshman came home toward daylight, spattered with
  7219  candle-grease, smeared with clay, and almost worn out. He found Huck
  7220  still in the bed that had been provided for him, and delirious with
  7221  fever. The physicians were all at the cave, so the Widow Douglas came
  7222  and took charge of the patient. She said she would do her best by him,
  7223  because, whether he was good, bad, or indifferent, he was the Lord's,
  7224  and nothing that was the Lord's was a thing to be neglected. The
  7225  Welshman said Huck had good spots in him, and the widow said:
  7226  
  7227  "You can depend on it. That's the Lord's mark. He don't leave it off.
  7228  He never does. Puts it somewhere on every creature that comes from his
  7229  hands."
  7230  
  7231  Early in the forenoon parties of jaded men began to straggle into the
  7232  village, but the strongest of the citizens continued searching. All the
  7233  news that could be gained was that remotenesses of the cavern were
  7234  being ransacked that had never been visited before; that every corner
  7235  and crevice was going to be thoroughly searched; that wherever one
  7236  wandered through the maze of passages, lights were to be seen flitting
  7237  hither and thither in the distance, and shoutings and pistol-shots sent
  7238  their hollow reverberations to the ear down the sombre aisles. In one
  7239  place, far from the section usually traversed by tourists, the names
  7240  "BECKY & TOM" had been found traced upon the rocky wall with
  7241  candle-smoke, and near at hand a grease-soiled bit of ribbon. Mrs.
  7242  Thatcher recognized the ribbon and cried over it. She said it was the
  7243  last relic she should ever have of her child; and that no other memorial
  7244  of her could ever be so precious, because this one parted latest from
  7245  the living body before the awful death came. Some said that now and
  7246  then, in the cave, a far-away speck of light would glimmer, and then a
  7247  glorious shout would burst forth and a score of men go trooping down the
  7248  echoing aisle--and then a sickening disappointment always followed; the
  7249  children were not there; it was only a searcher's light.
  7250  
  7251  Three dreadful days and nights dragged their tedious hours along, and
  7252  the village sank into a hopeless stupor. No one had heart for anything.
  7253  The accidental discovery, just made, that the proprietor of the
  7254  Temperance Tavern kept liquor on his premises, scarcely fluttered the
  7255  public pulse, tremendous as the fact was. In a lucid interval, Huck
  7256  feebly led up to the subject of taverns, and finally asked--dimly
  7257  dreading the worst--if anything had been discovered at the Temperance
  7258  Tavern since he had been ill.
  7259  
  7260  "Yes," said the widow.
  7261  
  7262  Huck started up in bed, wild-eyed:
  7263  
  7264  "What? What was it?"
  7265  
  7266  "Liquor!--and the place has been shut up. Lie down, child--what a turn
  7267  you did give me!"
  7268  
  7269  "Only tell me just one thing--only just one--please! Was it Tom Sawyer
  7270  that found it?"
  7271  
  7272  The widow burst into tears. "Hush, hush, child, hush! I've told you
  7273  before, you must NOT talk. You are very, very sick!"
  7274  
  7275  Then nothing but liquor had been found; there would have been a great
  7276  powwow if it had been the gold. So the treasure was gone forever--gone
  7277  forever! But what could she be crying about? Curious that she should
  7278  cry.
  7279  
  7280  These thoughts worked their dim way through Huck's mind, and under the
  7281  weariness they gave him he fell asleep. The widow said to herself:
  7282  
  7283  "There--he's asleep, poor wreck. Tom Sawyer find it! Pity but somebody
  7284  could find Tom Sawyer! Ah, there ain't many left, now, that's got hope
  7285  enough, or strength enough, either, to go on searching."
  7286  
  7287  
  7288  
  7289  CHAPTER XXXI
  7290  
  7291  NOW to return to Tom and Becky's share in the picnic. They tripped
  7292  along the murky aisles with the rest of the company, visiting the
  7293  familiar wonders of the cave--wonders dubbed with rather
  7294  over-descriptive names, such as "The Drawing-Room," "The Cathedral,"
  7295  "Aladdin's Palace," and so on. Presently the hide-and-seek frolicking
  7296  began, and Tom and Becky engaged in it with zeal until the exertion
  7297  began to grow a trifle wearisome; then they wandered down a sinuous
  7298  avenue holding their candles aloft and reading the tangled web-work of
  7299  names, dates, post-office addresses, and mottoes with which the rocky
  7300  walls had been frescoed (in candle-smoke). Still drifting along and
  7301  talking, they scarcely noticed that they were now in a part of the cave
  7302  whose walls were not frescoed. They smoked their own names under an
  7303  overhanging shelf and moved on. Presently they came to a place where a
  7304  little stream of water, trickling over a ledge and carrying a limestone
  7305  sediment with it, had, in the slow-dragging ages, formed a laced and
  7306  ruffled Niagara in gleaming and imperishable stone. Tom squeezed his
  7307  small body behind it in order to illuminate it for Becky's
  7308  gratification. He found that it curtained a sort of steep natural
  7309  stairway which was enclosed between narrow walls, and at once the
  7310  ambition to be a discoverer seized him. Becky responded to his call,
  7311  and they made a smoke-mark for future guidance, and started upon their
  7312  quest. They wound this way and that, far down into the secret depths of
  7313  the cave, made another mark, and branched off in search of novelties to
  7314  tell the upper world about. In one place they found a spacious cavern,
  7315  from whose ceiling depended a multitude of shining stalactites of the
  7316  length and circumference of a man's leg; they walked all about it,
  7317  wondering and admiring, and presently left it by one of the numerous
  7318  passages that opened into it. This shortly brought them to a bewitching
  7319  spring, whose basin was incrusted with a frostwork of glittering
  7320  crystals; it was in the midst of a cavern whose walls were supported by
  7321  many fantastic pillars which had been formed by the joining of great
  7322  stalactites and stalagmites together, the result of the ceaseless
  7323  water-drip of centuries. Under the roof vast knots of bats had packed
  7324  themselves together, thousands in a bunch; the lights disturbed the
  7325  creatures and they came flocking down by hundreds, squeaking and
  7326  darting furiously at the candles. Tom knew their ways and the danger of
  7327  this sort of conduct. He seized Becky's hand and hurried her into the
  7328  first corridor that offered; and none too soon, for a bat struck
  7329  Becky's light out with its wing while she was passing out of the
  7330  cavern. The bats chased the children a good distance; but the fugitives
  7331  plunged into every new passage that offered, and at last got rid of the
  7332  perilous things. Tom found a subterranean lake, shortly, which
  7333  stretched its dim length away until its shape was lost in the shadows.
  7334  He wanted to explore its borders, but concluded that it would be best
  7335  to sit down and rest awhile, first. Now, for the first time, the deep
  7336  stillness of the place laid a clammy hand upon the spirits of the
  7337  children. Becky said:
  7338  
  7339  "Why, I didn't notice, but it seems ever so long since I heard any of
  7340  the others."
  7341  
  7342  "Come to think, Becky, we are away down below them--and I don't know
  7343  how far away north, or south, or east, or whichever it is. We couldn't
  7344  hear them here."
  7345  
  7346  Becky grew apprehensive.
  7347  
  7348  "I wonder how long we've been down here, Tom? We better start back."
  7349  
  7350  "Yes, I reckon we better. P'raps we better."
  7351  
  7352  "Can you find the way, Tom? It's all a mixed-up crookedness to me."
  7353  
  7354  "I reckon I could find it--but then the bats. If they put our candles
  7355  out it will be an awful fix. Let's try some other way, so as not to go
  7356  through there."
  7357  
  7358  "Well. But I hope we won't get lost. It would be so awful!" and the
  7359  girl shuddered at the thought of the dreadful possibilities.
  7360  
  7361  They started through a corridor, and traversed it in silence a long
  7362  way, glancing at each new opening, to see if there was anything
  7363  familiar about the look of it; but they were all strange. Every time
  7364  Tom made an examination, Becky would watch his face for an encouraging
  7365  sign, and he would say cheerily:
  7366  
  7367  "Oh, it's all right. This ain't the one, but we'll come to it right
  7368  away!"
  7369  
  7370  But he felt less and less hopeful with each failure, and presently
  7371  began to turn off into diverging avenues at sheer random, in desperate
  7372  hope of finding the one that was wanted. He still said it was "all
  7373  right," but there was such a leaden dread at his heart that the words
  7374  had lost their ring and sounded just as if he had said, "All is lost!"
  7375  Becky clung to his side in an anguish of fear, and tried hard to keep
  7376  back the tears, but they would come. At last she said:
  7377  
  7378  "Oh, Tom, never mind the bats, let's go back that way! We seem to get
  7379  worse and worse off all the time."
  7380  
  7381  "Listen!" said he.
  7382  
  7383  Profound silence; silence so deep that even their breathings were
  7384  conspicuous in the hush. Tom shouted. The call went echoing down the
  7385  empty aisles and died out in the distance in a faint sound that
  7386  resembled a ripple of mocking laughter.
  7387  
  7388  "Oh, don't do it again, Tom, it is too horrid," said Becky.
  7389  
  7390  "It is horrid, but I better, Becky; they might hear us, you know," and
  7391  he shouted again.
  7392  
  7393  The "might" was even a chillier horror than the ghostly laughter, it
  7394  so confessed a perishing hope. The children stood still and listened;
  7395  but there was no result. Tom turned upon the back track at once, and
  7396  hurried his steps. It was but a little while before a certain
  7397  indecision in his manner revealed another fearful fact to Becky--he
  7398  could not find his way back!
  7399  
  7400  "Oh, Tom, you didn't make any marks!"
  7401  
  7402  "Becky, I was such a fool! Such a fool! I never thought we might want
  7403  to come back! No--I can't find the way. It's all mixed up."
  7404  
  7405  "Tom, Tom, we're lost! we're lost! We never can get out of this awful
  7406  place! Oh, why DID we ever leave the others!"
  7407  
  7408  She sank to the ground and burst into such a frenzy of crying that Tom
  7409  was appalled with the idea that she might die, or lose her reason. He
  7410  sat down by her and put his arms around her; she buried her face in his
  7411  bosom, she clung to him, she poured out her terrors, her unavailing
  7412  regrets, and the far echoes turned them all to jeering laughter. Tom
  7413  begged her to pluck up hope again, and she said she could not. He fell
  7414  to blaming and abusing himself for getting her into this miserable
  7415  situation; this had a better effect. She said she would try to hope
  7416  again, she would get up and follow wherever he might lead if only he
  7417  would not talk like that any more. For he was no more to blame than
  7418  she, she said.
  7419  
  7420  So they moved on again--aimlessly--simply at random--all they could do
  7421  was to move, keep moving. For a little while, hope made a show of
  7422  reviving--not with any reason to back it, but only because it is its
  7423  nature to revive when the spring has not been taken out of it by age
  7424  and familiarity with failure.
  7425  
  7426  By-and-by Tom took Becky's candle and blew it out. This economy meant
  7427  so much! Words were not needed. Becky understood, and her hope died
  7428  again. She knew that Tom had a whole candle and three or four pieces in
  7429  his pockets--yet he must economize.
  7430  
  7431  By-and-by, fatigue began to assert its claims; the children tried to
  7432  pay attention, for it was dreadful to think of sitting down when time
  7433  was grown to be so precious, moving, in some direction, in any
  7434  direction, was at least progress and might bear fruit; but to sit down
  7435  was to invite death and shorten its pursuit.
  7436  
  7437  At last Becky's frail limbs refused to carry her farther. She sat
  7438  down. Tom rested with her, and they talked of home, and the friends
  7439  there, and the comfortable beds and, above all, the light! Becky cried,
  7440  and Tom tried to think of some way of comforting her, but all his
  7441  encouragements were grown threadbare with use, and sounded like
  7442  sarcasms. Fatigue bore so heavily upon Becky that she drowsed off to
  7443  sleep. Tom was grateful. He sat looking into her drawn face and saw it
  7444  grow smooth and natural under the influence of pleasant dreams; and
  7445  by-and-by a smile dawned and rested there. The peaceful face reflected
  7446  somewhat of peace and healing into his own spirit, and his thoughts
  7447  wandered away to bygone times and dreamy memories. While he was deep in
  7448  his musings, Becky woke up with a breezy little laugh--but it was
  7449  stricken dead upon her lips, and a groan followed it.
  7450  
  7451  "Oh, how COULD I sleep! I wish I never, never had waked! No! No, I
  7452  don't, Tom! Don't look so! I won't say it again."
  7453  
  7454  "I'm glad you've slept, Becky; you'll feel rested, now, and we'll find
  7455  the way out."
  7456  
  7457  "We can try, Tom; but I've seen such a beautiful country in my dream.
  7458  I reckon we are going there."
  7459  
  7460  "Maybe not, maybe not. Cheer up, Becky, and let's go on trying."
  7461  
  7462  They rose up and wandered along, hand in hand and hopeless. They tried
  7463  to estimate how long they had been in the cave, but all they knew was
  7464  that it seemed days and weeks, and yet it was plain that this could not
  7465  be, for their candles were not gone yet. A long time after this--they
  7466  could not tell how long--Tom said they must go softly and listen for
  7467  dripping water--they must find a spring. They found one presently, and
  7468  Tom said it was time to rest again. Both were cruelly tired, yet Becky
  7469  said she thought she could go a little farther. She was surprised to
  7470  hear Tom dissent. She could not understand it. They sat down, and Tom
  7471  fastened his candle to the wall in front of them with some clay.
  7472  Thought was soon busy; nothing was said for some time. Then Becky broke
  7473  the silence:
  7474  
  7475  "Tom, I am so hungry!"
  7476  
  7477  Tom took something out of his pocket.
  7478  
  7479  "Do you remember this?" said he.
  7480  
  7481  Becky almost smiled.
  7482  
  7483  "It's our wedding-cake, Tom."
  7484  
  7485  "Yes--I wish it was as big as a barrel, for it's all we've got."
  7486  
  7487  "I saved it from the picnic for us to dream on, Tom, the way grown-up
  7488  people do with wedding-cake--but it'll be our--"
  7489  
  7490  She dropped the sentence where it was. Tom divided the cake and Becky
  7491  ate with good appetite, while Tom nibbled at his moiety. There was
  7492  abundance of cold water to finish the feast with. By-and-by Becky
  7493  suggested that they move on again. Tom was silent a moment. Then he
  7494  said:
  7495  
  7496  "Becky, can you bear it if I tell you something?"
  7497  
  7498  Becky's face paled, but she thought she could.
  7499  
  7500  "Well, then, Becky, we must stay here, where there's water to drink.
  7501  That little piece is our last candle!"
  7502  
  7503  Becky gave loose to tears and wailings. Tom did what he could to
  7504  comfort her, but with little effect. At length Becky said:
  7505  
  7506  "Tom!"
  7507  
  7508  "Well, Becky?"
  7509  
  7510  "They'll miss us and hunt for us!"
  7511  
  7512  "Yes, they will! Certainly they will!"
  7513  
  7514  "Maybe they're hunting for us now, Tom."
  7515  
  7516  "Why, I reckon maybe they are. I hope they are."
  7517  
  7518  "When would they miss us, Tom?"
  7519  
  7520  "When they get back to the boat, I reckon."
  7521  
  7522  "Tom, it might be dark then--would they notice we hadn't come?"
  7523  
  7524  "I don't know. But anyway, your mother would miss you as soon as they
  7525  got home."
  7526  
  7527  A frightened look in Becky's face brought Tom to his senses and he saw
  7528  that he had made a blunder. Becky was not to have gone home that night!
  7529  The children became silent and thoughtful. In a moment a new burst of
  7530  grief from Becky showed Tom that the thing in his mind had struck hers
  7531  also--that the Sabbath morning might be half spent before Mrs. Thatcher
  7532  discovered that Becky was not at Mrs. Harper's.
  7533  
  7534  The children fastened their eyes upon their bit of candle and watched
  7535  it melt slowly and pitilessly away; saw the half inch of wick stand
  7536  alone at last; saw the feeble flame rise and fall, climb the thin
  7537  column of smoke, linger at its top a moment, and then--the horror of
  7538  utter darkness reigned!
  7539  
  7540  How long afterward it was that Becky came to a slow consciousness that
  7541  she was crying in Tom's arms, neither could tell. All that they knew
  7542  was, that after what seemed a mighty stretch of time, both awoke out of
  7543  a dead stupor of sleep and resumed their miseries once more. Tom said
  7544  it might be Sunday, now--maybe Monday. He tried to get Becky to talk,
  7545  but her sorrows were too oppressive, all her hopes were gone. Tom said
  7546  that they must have been missed long ago, and no doubt the search was
  7547  going on. He would shout and maybe some one would come. He tried it;
  7548  but in the darkness the distant echoes sounded so hideously that he
  7549  tried it no more.
  7550  
  7551  The hours wasted away, and hunger came to torment the captives again.
  7552  A portion of Tom's half of the cake was left; they divided and ate it.
  7553  But they seemed hungrier than before. The poor morsel of food only
  7554  whetted desire.
  7555  
  7556  By-and-by Tom said:
  7557  
  7558  "SH! Did you hear that?"
  7559  
  7560  Both held their breath and listened. There was a sound like the
  7561  faintest, far-off shout. Instantly Tom answered it, and leading Becky
  7562  by the hand, started groping down the corridor in its direction.
  7563  Presently he listened again; again the sound was heard, and apparently
  7564  a little nearer.
  7565  
  7566  "It's them!" said Tom; "they're coming! Come along, Becky--we're all
  7567  right now!"
  7568  
  7569  The joy of the prisoners was almost overwhelming. Their speed was
  7570  slow, however, because pitfalls were somewhat common, and had to be
  7571  guarded against. They shortly came to one and had to stop. It might be
  7572  three feet deep, it might be a hundred--there was no passing it at any
  7573  rate. Tom got down on his breast and reached as far down as he could.
  7574  No bottom. They must stay there and wait until the searchers came. They
  7575  listened; evidently the distant shoutings were growing more distant! a
  7576  moment or two more and they had gone altogether. The heart-sinking
  7577  misery of it! Tom whooped until he was hoarse, but it was of no use. He
  7578  talked hopefully to Becky; but an age of anxious waiting passed and no
  7579  sounds came again.
  7580  
  7581  The children groped their way back to the spring. The weary time
  7582  dragged on; they slept again, and awoke famished and woe-stricken. Tom
  7583  believed it must be Tuesday by this time.
  7584  
  7585  Now an idea struck him. There were some side passages near at hand. It
  7586  would be better to explore some of these than bear the weight of the
  7587  heavy time in idleness. He took a kite-line from his pocket, tied it to
  7588  a projection, and he and Becky started, Tom in the lead, unwinding the
  7589  line as he groped along. At the end of twenty steps the corridor ended
  7590  in a "jumping-off place." Tom got down on his knees and felt below, and
  7591  then as far around the corner as he could reach with his hands
  7592  conveniently; he made an effort to stretch yet a little farther to the
  7593  right, and at that moment, not twenty yards away, a human hand, holding
  7594  a candle, appeared from behind a rock! Tom lifted up a glorious shout,
  7595  and instantly that hand was followed by the body it belonged to--Injun
  7596  Joe's! Tom was paralyzed; he could not move. He was vastly gratified
  7597  the next moment, to see the "Spaniard" take to his heels and get
  7598  himself out of sight. Tom wondered that Joe had not recognized his
  7599  voice and come over and killed him for testifying in court. But the
  7600  echoes must have disguised the voice. Without doubt, that was it, he
  7601  reasoned. Tom's fright weakened every muscle in his body. He said to
  7602  himself that if he had strength enough to get back to the spring he
  7603  would stay there, and nothing should tempt him to run the risk of
  7604  meeting Injun Joe again. He was careful to keep from Becky what it was
  7605  he had seen. He told her he had only shouted "for luck."
  7606  
  7607  But hunger and wretchedness rise superior to fears in the long run.
  7608  Another tedious wait at the spring and another long sleep brought
  7609  changes. The children awoke tortured with a raging hunger. Tom believed
  7610  that it must be Wednesday or Thursday or even Friday or Saturday, now,
  7611  and that the search had been given over. He proposed to explore another
  7612  passage. He felt willing to risk Injun Joe and all other terrors. But
  7613  Becky was very weak. She had sunk into a dreary apathy and would not be
  7614  roused. She said she would wait, now, where she was, and die--it would
  7615  not be long. She told Tom to go with the kite-line and explore if he
  7616  chose; but she implored him to come back every little while and speak
  7617  to her; and she made him promise that when the awful time came, he
  7618  would stay by her and hold her hand until all was over.
  7619  
  7620  Tom kissed her, with a choking sensation in his throat, and made a
  7621  show of being confident of finding the searchers or an escape from the
  7622  cave; then he took the kite-line in his hand and went groping down one
  7623  of the passages on his hands and knees, distressed with hunger and sick
  7624  with bodings of coming doom.
  7625  
  7626  
  7627  
  7628  CHAPTER XXXII
  7629  
  7630  TUESDAY afternoon came, and waned to the twilight. The village of St.
  7631  Petersburg still mourned. The lost children had not been found. Public
  7632  prayers had been offered up for them, and many and many a private
  7633  prayer that had the petitioner's whole heart in it; but still no good
  7634  news came from the cave. The majority of the searchers had given up the
  7635  quest and gone back to their daily avocations, saying that it was plain
  7636  the children could never be found. Mrs. Thatcher was very ill, and a
  7637  great part of the time delirious. People said it was heartbreaking to
  7638  hear her call her child, and raise her head and listen a whole minute
  7639  at a time, then lay it wearily down again with a moan. Aunt Polly had
  7640  drooped into a settled melancholy, and her gray hair had grown almost
  7641  white. The village went to its rest on Tuesday night, sad and forlorn.
  7642  
  7643  Away in the middle of the night a wild peal burst from the village
  7644  bells, and in a moment the streets were swarming with frantic half-clad
  7645  people, who shouted, "Turn out! turn out! they're found! they're
  7646  found!" Tin pans and horns were added to the din, the population massed
  7647  itself and moved toward the river, met the children coming in an open
  7648  carriage drawn by shouting citizens, thronged around it, joined its
  7649  homeward march, and swept magnificently up the main street roaring
  7650  huzzah after huzzah!
  7651  
  7652  The village was illuminated; nobody went to bed again; it was the
  7653  greatest night the little town had ever seen. During the first half-hour
  7654  a procession of villagers filed through Judge Thatcher's house, seized
  7655  the saved ones and kissed them, squeezed Mrs. Thatcher's hand, tried to
  7656  speak but couldn't--and drifted out raining tears all over the place.
  7657  
  7658  Aunt Polly's happiness was complete, and Mrs. Thatcher's nearly so. It
  7659  would be complete, however, as soon as the messenger dispatched with
  7660  the great news to the cave should get the word to her husband. Tom lay
  7661  upon a sofa with an eager auditory about him and told the history of
  7662  the wonderful adventure, putting in many striking additions to adorn it
  7663  withal; and closed with a description of how he left Becky and went on
  7664  an exploring expedition; how he followed two avenues as far as his
  7665  kite-line would reach; how he followed a third to the fullest stretch of
  7666  the kite-line, and was about to turn back when he glimpsed a far-off
  7667  speck that looked like daylight; dropped the line and groped toward it,
  7668  pushed his head and shoulders through a small hole, and saw the broad
  7669  Mississippi rolling by! And if it had only happened to be night he would
  7670  not have seen that speck of daylight and would not have explored that
  7671  passage any more! He told how he went back for Becky and broke the good
  7672  news and she told him not to fret her with such stuff, for she was
  7673  tired, and knew she was going to die, and wanted to. He described how he
  7674  labored with her and convinced her; and how she almost died for joy when
  7675  she had groped to where she actually saw the blue speck of daylight; how
  7676  he pushed his way out at the hole and then helped her out; how they sat
  7677  there and cried for gladness; how some men came along in a skiff and Tom
  7678  hailed them and told them their situation and their famished condition;
  7679  how the men didn't believe the wild tale at first, "because," said they,
  7680  "you are five miles down the river below the valley the cave is in"
  7681  --then took them aboard, rowed to a house, gave them supper, made them
  7682  rest till two or three hours after dark and then brought them home.
  7683  
  7684  Before day-dawn, Judge Thatcher and the handful of searchers with him
  7685  were tracked out, in the cave, by the twine clews they had strung
  7686  behind them, and informed of the great news.
  7687  
  7688  Three days and nights of toil and hunger in the cave were not to be
  7689  shaken off at once, as Tom and Becky soon discovered. They were
  7690  bedridden all of Wednesday and Thursday, and seemed to grow more and
  7691  more tired and worn, all the time. Tom got about, a little, on
  7692  Thursday, was down-town Friday, and nearly as whole as ever Saturday;
  7693  but Becky did not leave her room until Sunday, and then she looked as
  7694  if she had passed through a wasting illness.
  7695  
  7696  Tom learned of Huck's sickness and went to see him on Friday, but
  7697  could not be admitted to the bedroom; neither could he on Saturday or
  7698  Sunday. He was admitted daily after that, but was warned to keep still
  7699  about his adventure and introduce no exciting topic. The Widow Douglas
  7700  stayed by to see that he obeyed. At home Tom learned of the Cardiff
  7701  Hill event; also that the "ragged man's" body had eventually been found
  7702  in the river near the ferry-landing; he had been drowned while trying
  7703  to escape, perhaps.
  7704  
  7705  About a fortnight after Tom's rescue from the cave, he started off to
  7706  visit Huck, who had grown plenty strong enough, now, to hear exciting
  7707  talk, and Tom had some that would interest him, he thought. Judge
  7708  Thatcher's house was on Tom's way, and he stopped to see Becky. The
  7709  Judge and some friends set Tom to talking, and some one asked him
  7710  ironically if he wouldn't like to go to the cave again. Tom said he
  7711  thought he wouldn't mind it. The Judge said:
  7712  
  7713  "Well, there are others just like you, Tom, I've not the least doubt.
  7714  But we have taken care of that. Nobody will get lost in that cave any
  7715  more."
  7716  
  7717  "Why?"
  7718  
  7719  "Because I had its big door sheathed with boiler iron two weeks ago,
  7720  and triple-locked--and I've got the keys."
  7721  
  7722  Tom turned as white as a sheet.
  7723  
  7724  "What's the matter, boy! Here, run, somebody! Fetch a glass of water!"
  7725  
  7726  The water was brought and thrown into Tom's face.
  7727  
  7728  "Ah, now you're all right. What was the matter with you, Tom?"
  7729  
  7730  "Oh, Judge, Injun Joe's in the cave!"
  7731  
  7732  
  7733  
  7734  CHAPTER XXXIII
  7735  
  7736  WITHIN a few minutes the news had spread, and a dozen skiff-loads of
  7737  men were on their way to McDougal's cave, and the ferryboat, well
  7738  filled with passengers, soon followed. Tom Sawyer was in the skiff that
  7739  bore Judge Thatcher.
  7740  
  7741  When the cave door was unlocked, a sorrowful sight presented itself in
  7742  the dim twilight of the place. Injun Joe lay stretched upon the ground,
  7743  dead, with his face close to the crack of the door, as if his longing
  7744  eyes had been fixed, to the latest moment, upon the light and the cheer
  7745  of the free world outside. Tom was touched, for he knew by his own
  7746  experience how this wretch had suffered. His pity was moved, but
  7747  nevertheless he felt an abounding sense of relief and security, now,
  7748  which revealed to him in a degree which he had not fully appreciated
  7749  before how vast a weight of dread had been lying upon him since the day
  7750  he lifted his voice against this bloody-minded outcast.
  7751  
  7752  Injun Joe's bowie-knife lay close by, its blade broken in two. The
  7753  great foundation-beam of the door had been chipped and hacked through,
  7754  with tedious labor; useless labor, too, it was, for the native rock
  7755  formed a sill outside it, and upon that stubborn material the knife had
  7756  wrought no effect; the only damage done was to the knife itself. But if
  7757  there had been no stony obstruction there the labor would have been
  7758  useless still, for if the beam had been wholly cut away Injun Joe could
  7759  not have squeezed his body under the door, and he knew it. So he had
  7760  only hacked that place in order to be doing something--in order to pass
  7761  the weary time--in order to employ his tortured faculties. Ordinarily
  7762  one could find half a dozen bits of candle stuck around in the crevices
  7763  of this vestibule, left there by tourists; but there were none now. The
  7764  prisoner had searched them out and eaten them. He had also contrived to
  7765  catch a few bats, and these, also, he had eaten, leaving only their
  7766  claws. The poor unfortunate had starved to death. In one place, near at
  7767  hand, a stalagmite had been slowly growing up from the ground for ages,
  7768  builded by the water-drip from a stalactite overhead. The captive had
  7769  broken off the stalagmite, and upon the stump had placed a stone,
  7770  wherein he had scooped a shallow hollow to catch the precious drop
  7771  that fell once in every three minutes with the dreary regularity of a
  7772  clock-tick--a dessertspoonful once in four and twenty hours. That drop
  7773  was falling when the Pyramids were new; when Troy fell; when the
  7774  foundations of Rome were laid; when Christ was crucified; when the
  7775  Conqueror created the British empire; when Columbus sailed; when the
  7776  massacre at Lexington was "news." It is falling now; it will still be
  7777  falling when all these things shall have sunk down the afternoon of
  7778  history, and the twilight of tradition, and been swallowed up in the
  7779  thick night of oblivion. Has everything a purpose and a mission? Did
  7780  this drop fall patiently during five thousand years to be ready for
  7781  this flitting human insect's need? and has it another important object
  7782  to accomplish ten thousand years to come? No matter. It is many and
  7783  many a year since the hapless half-breed scooped out the stone to catch
  7784  the priceless drops, but to this day the tourist stares longest at that
  7785  pathetic stone and that slow-dropping water when he comes to see the
  7786  wonders of McDougal's cave. Injun Joe's cup stands first in the list of
  7787  the cavern's marvels; even "Aladdin's Palace" cannot rival it.
  7788  
  7789  Injun Joe was buried near the mouth of the cave; and people flocked
  7790  there in boats and wagons from the towns and from all the farms and
  7791  hamlets for seven miles around; they brought their children, and all
  7792  sorts of provisions, and confessed that they had had almost as
  7793  satisfactory a time at the funeral as they could have had at the
  7794  hanging.
  7795  
  7796  This funeral stopped the further growth of one thing--the petition to
  7797  the governor for Injun Joe's pardon. The petition had been largely
  7798  signed; many tearful and eloquent meetings had been held, and a
  7799  committee of sappy women been appointed to go in deep mourning and wail
  7800  around the governor, and implore him to be a merciful ass and trample
  7801  his duty under foot. Injun Joe was believed to have killed five
  7802  citizens of the village, but what of that? If he had been Satan himself
  7803  there would have been plenty of weaklings ready to scribble their names
  7804  to a pardon-petition, and drip a tear on it from their permanently
  7805  impaired and leaky water-works.
  7806  
  7807  The morning after the funeral Tom took Huck to a private place to have
  7808  an important talk. Huck had learned all about Tom's adventure from the
  7809  Welshman and the Widow Douglas, by this time, but Tom said he reckoned
  7810  there was one thing they had not told him; that thing was what he
  7811  wanted to talk about now. Huck's face saddened. He said:
  7812  
  7813  "I know what it is. You got into No. 2 and never found anything but
  7814  whiskey. Nobody told me it was you; but I just knowed it must 'a' ben
  7815  you, soon as I heard 'bout that whiskey business; and I knowed you
  7816  hadn't got the money becuz you'd 'a' got at me some way or other and
  7817  told me even if you was mum to everybody else. Tom, something's always
  7818  told me we'd never get holt of that swag."
  7819  
  7820  "Why, Huck, I never told on that tavern-keeper. YOU know his tavern
  7821  was all right the Saturday I went to the picnic. Don't you remember you
  7822  was to watch there that night?"
  7823  
  7824  "Oh yes! Why, it seems 'bout a year ago. It was that very night that I
  7825  follered Injun Joe to the widder's."
  7826  
  7827  "YOU followed him?"
  7828  
  7829  "Yes--but you keep mum. I reckon Injun Joe's left friends behind him,
  7830  and I don't want 'em souring on me and doing me mean tricks. If it
  7831  hadn't ben for me he'd be down in Texas now, all right."
  7832  
  7833  Then Huck told his entire adventure in confidence to Tom, who had only
  7834  heard of the Welshman's part of it before.
  7835  
  7836  "Well," said Huck, presently, coming back to the main question,
  7837  "whoever nipped the whiskey in No. 2, nipped the money, too, I reckon
  7838  --anyways it's a goner for us, Tom."
  7839  
  7840  "Huck, that money wasn't ever in No. 2!"
  7841  
  7842  "What!" Huck searched his comrade's face keenly. "Tom, have you got on
  7843  the track of that money again?"
  7844  
  7845  "Huck, it's in the cave!"
  7846  
  7847  Huck's eyes blazed.
  7848  
  7849  "Say it again, Tom."
  7850  
  7851  "The money's in the cave!"
  7852  
  7853  "Tom--honest injun, now--is it fun, or earnest?"
  7854  
  7855  "Earnest, Huck--just as earnest as ever I was in my life. Will you go
  7856  in there with me and help get it out?"
  7857  
  7858  "I bet I will! I will if it's where we can blaze our way to it and not
  7859  get lost."
  7860  
  7861  "Huck, we can do that without the least little bit of trouble in the
  7862  world."
  7863  
  7864  "Good as wheat! What makes you think the money's--"
  7865  
  7866  "Huck, you just wait till we get in there. If we don't find it I'll
  7867  agree to give you my drum and every thing I've got in the world. I
  7868  will, by jings."
  7869  
  7870  "All right--it's a whiz. When do you say?"
  7871  
  7872  "Right now, if you say it. Are you strong enough?"
  7873  
  7874  "Is it far in the cave? I ben on my pins a little, three or four days,
  7875  now, but I can't walk more'n a mile, Tom--least I don't think I could."
  7876  
  7877  "It's about five mile into there the way anybody but me would go,
  7878  Huck, but there's a mighty short cut that they don't anybody but me
  7879  know about. Huck, I'll take you right to it in a skiff. I'll float the
  7880  skiff down there, and I'll pull it back again all by myself. You
  7881  needn't ever turn your hand over."
  7882  
  7883  "Less start right off, Tom."
  7884  
  7885  "All right. We want some bread and meat, and our pipes, and a little
  7886  bag or two, and two or three kite-strings, and some of these
  7887  new-fangled things they call lucifer matches. I tell you, many's
  7888  the time I wished I had some when I was in there before."
  7889  
  7890  A trifle after noon the boys borrowed a small skiff from a citizen who
  7891  was absent, and got under way at once. When they were several miles
  7892  below "Cave Hollow," Tom said:
  7893  
  7894  "Now you see this bluff here looks all alike all the way down from the
  7895  cave hollow--no houses, no wood-yards, bushes all alike. But do you see
  7896  that white place up yonder where there's been a landslide? Well, that's
  7897  one of my marks. We'll get ashore, now."
  7898  
  7899  They landed.
  7900  
  7901  "Now, Huck, where we're a-standing you could touch that hole I got out
  7902  of with a fishing-pole. See if you can find it."
  7903  
  7904  Huck searched all the place about, and found nothing. Tom proudly
  7905  marched into a thick clump of sumach bushes and said:
  7906  
  7907  "Here you are! Look at it, Huck; it's the snuggest hole in this
  7908  country. You just keep mum about it. All along I've been wanting to be
  7909  a robber, but I knew I'd got to have a thing like this, and where to
  7910  run across it was the bother. We've got it now, and we'll keep it
  7911  quiet, only we'll let Joe Harper and Ben Rogers in--because of course
  7912  there's got to be a Gang, or else there wouldn't be any style about it.
  7913  Tom Sawyer's Gang--it sounds splendid, don't it, Huck?"
  7914  
  7915  "Well, it just does, Tom. And who'll we rob?"
  7916  
  7917  "Oh, most anybody. Waylay people--that's mostly the way."
  7918  
  7919  "And kill them?"
  7920  
  7921  "No, not always. Hive them in the cave till they raise a ransom."
  7922  
  7923  "What's a ransom?"
  7924  
  7925  "Money. You make them raise all they can, off'n their friends; and
  7926  after you've kept them a year, if it ain't raised then you kill them.
  7927  That's the general way. Only you don't kill the women. You shut up the
  7928  women, but you don't kill them. They're always beautiful and rich, and
  7929  awfully scared. You take their watches and things, but you always take
  7930  your hat off and talk polite. They ain't anybody as polite as robbers
  7931  --you'll see that in any book. Well, the women get to loving you, and
  7932  after they've been in the cave a week or two weeks they stop crying and
  7933  after that you couldn't get them to leave. If you drove them out they'd
  7934  turn right around and come back. It's so in all the books."
  7935  
  7936  "Why, it's real bully, Tom. I believe it's better'n to be a pirate."
  7937  
  7938  "Yes, it's better in some ways, because it's close to home and
  7939  circuses and all that."
  7940  
  7941  By this time everything was ready and the boys entered the hole, Tom
  7942  in the lead. They toiled their way to the farther end of the tunnel,
  7943  then made their spliced kite-strings fast and moved on. A few steps
  7944  brought them to the spring, and Tom felt a shudder quiver all through
  7945  him. He showed Huck the fragment of candle-wick perched on a lump of
  7946  clay against the wall, and described how he and Becky had watched the
  7947  flame struggle and expire.
  7948  
  7949  The boys began to quiet down to whispers, now, for the stillness and
  7950  gloom of the place oppressed their spirits. They went on, and presently
  7951  entered and followed Tom's other corridor until they reached the
  7952  "jumping-off place." The candles revealed the fact that it was not
  7953  really a precipice, but only a steep clay hill twenty or thirty feet
  7954  high. Tom whispered:
  7955  
  7956  "Now I'll show you something, Huck."
  7957  
  7958  He held his candle aloft and said:
  7959  
  7960  "Look as far around the corner as you can. Do you see that? There--on
  7961  the big rock over yonder--done with candle-smoke."
  7962  
  7963  "Tom, it's a CROSS!"
  7964  
  7965  "NOW where's your Number Two? 'UNDER THE CROSS,' hey? Right yonder's
  7966  where I saw Injun Joe poke up his candle, Huck!"
  7967  
  7968  Huck stared at the mystic sign awhile, and then said with a shaky voice:
  7969  
  7970  "Tom, less git out of here!"
  7971  
  7972  "What! and leave the treasure?"
  7973  
  7974  "Yes--leave it. Injun Joe's ghost is round about there, certain."
  7975  
  7976  "No it ain't, Huck, no it ain't. It would ha'nt the place where he
  7977  died--away out at the mouth of the cave--five mile from here."
  7978  
  7979  "No, Tom, it wouldn't. It would hang round the money. I know the ways
  7980  of ghosts, and so do you."
  7981  
  7982  Tom began to fear that Huck was right. Misgivings gathered in his
  7983  mind. But presently an idea occurred to him--
  7984  
  7985  "Lookyhere, Huck, what fools we're making of ourselves! Injun Joe's
  7986  ghost ain't a going to come around where there's a cross!"
  7987  
  7988  The point was well taken. It had its effect.
  7989  
  7990  "Tom, I didn't think of that. But that's so. It's luck for us, that
  7991  cross is. I reckon we'll climb down there and have a hunt for that box."
  7992  
  7993  Tom went first, cutting rude steps in the clay hill as he descended.
  7994  Huck followed. Four avenues opened out of the small cavern which the
  7995  great rock stood in. The boys examined three of them with no result.
  7996  They found a small recess in the one nearest the base of the rock, with
  7997  a pallet of blankets spread down in it; also an old suspender, some
  7998  bacon rind, and the well-gnawed bones of two or three fowls. But there
  7999  was no money-box. The lads searched and researched this place, but in
  8000  vain. Tom said:
  8001  
  8002  "He said UNDER the cross. Well, this comes nearest to being under the
  8003  cross. It can't be under the rock itself, because that sets solid on
  8004  the ground."
  8005  
  8006  They searched everywhere once more, and then sat down discouraged.
  8007  Huck could suggest nothing. By-and-by Tom said:
  8008  
  8009  "Lookyhere, Huck, there's footprints and some candle-grease on the
  8010  clay about one side of this rock, but not on the other sides. Now,
  8011  what's that for? I bet you the money IS under the rock. I'm going to
  8012  dig in the clay."
  8013  
  8014  "That ain't no bad notion, Tom!" said Huck with animation.
  8015  
  8016  Tom's "real Barlow" was out at once, and he had not dug four inches
  8017  before he struck wood.
  8018  
  8019  "Hey, Huck!--you hear that?"
  8020  
  8021  Huck began to dig and scratch now. Some boards were soon uncovered and
  8022  removed. They had concealed a natural chasm which led under the rock.
  8023  Tom got into this and held his candle as far under the rock as he
  8024  could, but said he could not see to the end of the rift. He proposed to
  8025  explore. He stooped and passed under; the narrow way descended
  8026  gradually. He followed its winding course, first to the right, then to
  8027  the left, Huck at his heels. Tom turned a short curve, by-and-by, and
  8028  exclaimed:
  8029  
  8030  "My goodness, Huck, lookyhere!"
  8031  
  8032  It was the treasure-box, sure enough, occupying a snug little cavern,
  8033  along with an empty powder-keg, a couple of guns in leather cases, two
  8034  or three pairs of old moccasins, a leather belt, and some other rubbish
  8035  well soaked with the water-drip.
  8036  
  8037  "Got it at last!" said Huck, ploughing among the tarnished coins with
  8038  his hand. "My, but we're rich, Tom!"
  8039  
  8040  "Huck, I always reckoned we'd get it. It's just too good to believe,
  8041  but we HAVE got it, sure! Say--let's not fool around here. Let's snake
  8042  it out. Lemme see if I can lift the box."
  8043  
  8044  It weighed about fifty pounds. Tom could lift it, after an awkward
  8045  fashion, but could not carry it conveniently.
  8046  
  8047  "I thought so," he said; "THEY carried it like it was heavy, that day
  8048  at the ha'nted house. I noticed that. I reckon I was right to think of
  8049  fetching the little bags along."
  8050  
  8051  The money was soon in the bags and the boys took it up to the cross
  8052  rock.
  8053  
  8054  "Now less fetch the guns and things," said Huck.
  8055  
  8056  "No, Huck--leave them there. They're just the tricks to have when we
  8057  go to robbing. We'll keep them there all the time, and we'll hold our
  8058  orgies there, too. It's an awful snug place for orgies."
  8059  
  8060  "What orgies?"
  8061  
  8062  "I dono. But robbers always have orgies, and of course we've got to
  8063  have them, too. Come along, Huck, we've been in here a long time. It's
  8064  getting late, I reckon. I'm hungry, too. We'll eat and smoke when we
  8065  get to the skiff."
  8066  
  8067  They presently emerged into the clump of sumach bushes, looked warily
  8068  out, found the coast clear, and were soon lunching and smoking in the
  8069  skiff. As the sun dipped toward the horizon they pushed out and got
  8070  under way. Tom skimmed up the shore through the long twilight, chatting
  8071  cheerily with Huck, and landed shortly after dark.
  8072  
  8073  "Now, Huck," said Tom, "we'll hide the money in the loft of the
  8074  widow's woodshed, and I'll come up in the morning and we'll count it
  8075  and divide, and then we'll hunt up a place out in the woods for it
  8076  where it will be safe. Just you lay quiet here and watch the stuff till
  8077  I run and hook Benny Taylor's little wagon; I won't be gone a minute."
  8078  
  8079  He disappeared, and presently returned with the wagon, put the two
  8080  small sacks into it, threw some old rags on top of them, and started
  8081  off, dragging his cargo behind him. When the boys reached the
  8082  Welshman's house, they stopped to rest. Just as they were about to move
  8083  on, the Welshman stepped out and said:
  8084  
  8085  "Hallo, who's that?"
  8086  
  8087  "Huck and Tom Sawyer."
  8088  
  8089  "Good! Come along with me, boys, you are keeping everybody waiting.
  8090  Here--hurry up, trot ahead--I'll haul the wagon for you. Why, it's not
  8091  as light as it might be. Got bricks in it?--or old metal?"
  8092  
  8093  "Old metal," said Tom.
  8094  
  8095  "I judged so; the boys in this town will take more trouble and fool
  8096  away more time hunting up six bits' worth of old iron to sell to the
  8097  foundry than they would to make twice the money at regular work. But
  8098  that's human nature--hurry along, hurry along!"
  8099  
  8100  The boys wanted to know what the hurry was about.
  8101  
  8102  "Never mind; you'll see, when we get to the Widow Douglas'."
  8103  
  8104  Huck said with some apprehension--for he was long used to being
  8105  falsely accused:
  8106  
  8107  "Mr. Jones, we haven't been doing nothing."
  8108  
  8109  The Welshman laughed.
  8110  
  8111  "Well, I don't know, Huck, my boy. I don't know about that. Ain't you
  8112  and the widow good friends?"
  8113  
  8114  "Yes. Well, she's ben good friends to me, anyway."
  8115  
  8116  "All right, then. What do you want to be afraid for?"
  8117  
  8118  This question was not entirely answered in Huck's slow mind before he
  8119  found himself pushed, along with Tom, into Mrs. Douglas' drawing-room.
  8120  Mr. Jones left the wagon near the door and followed.
  8121  
  8122  The place was grandly lighted, and everybody that was of any
  8123  consequence in the village was there. The Thatchers were there, the
  8124  Harpers, the Rogerses, Aunt Polly, Sid, Mary, the minister, the editor,
  8125  and a great many more, and all dressed in their best. The widow
  8126  received the boys as heartily as any one could well receive two such
  8127  looking beings. They were covered with clay and candle-grease. Aunt
  8128  Polly blushed crimson with humiliation, and frowned and shook her head
  8129  at Tom. Nobody suffered half as much as the two boys did, however. Mr.
  8130  Jones said:
  8131  
  8132  "Tom wasn't at home, yet, so I gave him up; but I stumbled on him and
  8133  Huck right at my door, and so I just brought them along in a hurry."
  8134  
  8135  "And you did just right," said the widow. "Come with me, boys."
  8136  
  8137  She took them to a bedchamber and said:
  8138  
  8139  "Now wash and dress yourselves. Here are two new suits of clothes
  8140  --shirts, socks, everything complete. They're Huck's--no, no thanks,
  8141  Huck--Mr. Jones bought one and I the other. But they'll fit both of you.
  8142  Get into them. We'll wait--come down when you are slicked up enough."
  8143  
  8144  Then she left.
  8145  
  8146  
  8147  
  8148  CHAPTER XXXIV
  8149  
  8150  HUCK said: "Tom, we can slope, if we can find a rope. The window ain't
  8151  high from the ground."
  8152  
  8153  "Shucks! what do you want to slope for?"
  8154  
  8155  "Well, I ain't used to that kind of a crowd. I can't stand it. I ain't
  8156  going down there, Tom."
  8157  
  8158  "Oh, bother! It ain't anything. I don't mind it a bit. I'll take care
  8159  of you."
  8160  
  8161  Sid appeared.
  8162  
  8163  "Tom," said he, "auntie has been waiting for you all the afternoon.
  8164  Mary got your Sunday clothes ready, and everybody's been fretting about
  8165  you. Say--ain't this grease and clay, on your clothes?"
  8166  
  8167  "Now, Mr. Siddy, you jist 'tend to your own business. What's all this
  8168  blow-out about, anyway?"
  8169  
  8170  "It's one of the widow's parties that she's always having. This time
  8171  it's for the Welshman and his sons, on account of that scrape they
  8172  helped her out of the other night. And say--I can tell you something,
  8173  if you want to know."
  8174  
  8175  "Well, what?"
  8176  
  8177  "Why, old Mr. Jones is going to try to spring something on the people
  8178  here to-night, but I overheard him tell auntie to-day about it, as a
  8179  secret, but I reckon it's not much of a secret now. Everybody knows
  8180  --the widow, too, for all she tries to let on she don't. Mr. Jones was
  8181  bound Huck should be here--couldn't get along with his grand secret
  8182  without Huck, you know!"
  8183  
  8184  "Secret about what, Sid?"
  8185  
  8186  "About Huck tracking the robbers to the widow's. I reckon Mr. Jones
  8187  was going to make a grand time over his surprise, but I bet you it will
  8188  drop pretty flat."
  8189  
  8190  Sid chuckled in a very contented and satisfied way.
  8191  
  8192  "Sid, was it you that told?"
  8193  
  8194  "Oh, never mind who it was. SOMEBODY told--that's enough."
  8195  
  8196  "Sid, there's only one person in this town mean enough to do that, and
  8197  that's you. If you had been in Huck's place you'd 'a' sneaked down the
  8198  hill and never told anybody on the robbers. You can't do any but mean
  8199  things, and you can't bear to see anybody praised for doing good ones.
  8200  There--no thanks, as the widow says"--and Tom cuffed Sid's ears and
  8201  helped him to the door with several kicks. "Now go and tell auntie if
  8202  you dare--and to-morrow you'll catch it!"
  8203  
  8204  Some minutes later the widow's guests were at the supper-table, and a
  8205  dozen children were propped up at little side-tables in the same room,
  8206  after the fashion of that country and that day. At the proper time Mr.
  8207  Jones made his little speech, in which he thanked the widow for the
  8208  honor she was doing himself and his sons, but said that there was
  8209  another person whose modesty--
  8210  
  8211  And so forth and so on. He sprung his secret about Huck's share in the
  8212  adventure in the finest dramatic manner he was master of, but the
  8213  surprise it occasioned was largely counterfeit and not as clamorous and
  8214  effusive as it might have been under happier circumstances. However,
  8215  the widow made a pretty fair show of astonishment, and heaped so many
  8216  compliments and so much gratitude upon Huck that he almost forgot the
  8217  nearly intolerable discomfort of his new clothes in the entirely
  8218  intolerable discomfort of being set up as a target for everybody's gaze
  8219  and everybody's laudations.
  8220  
  8221  The widow said she meant to give Huck a home under her roof and have
  8222  him educated; and that when she could spare the money she would start
  8223  him in business in a modest way. Tom's chance was come. He said:
  8224  
  8225  "Huck don't need it. Huck's rich."
  8226  
  8227  Nothing but a heavy strain upon the good manners of the company kept
  8228  back the due and proper complimentary laugh at this pleasant joke. But
  8229  the silence was a little awkward. Tom broke it:
  8230  
  8231  "Huck's got money. Maybe you don't believe it, but he's got lots of
  8232  it. Oh, you needn't smile--I reckon I can show you. You just wait a
  8233  minute."
  8234  
  8235  Tom ran out of doors. The company looked at each other with a
  8236  perplexed interest--and inquiringly at Huck, who was tongue-tied.
  8237  
  8238  "Sid, what ails Tom?" said Aunt Polly. "He--well, there ain't ever any
  8239  making of that boy out. I never--"
  8240  
  8241  Tom entered, struggling with the weight of his sacks, and Aunt Polly
  8242  did not finish her sentence. Tom poured the mass of yellow coin upon
  8243  the table and said:
  8244  
  8245  "There--what did I tell you? Half of it's Huck's and half of it's mine!"
  8246  
  8247  The spectacle took the general breath away. All gazed, nobody spoke
  8248  for a moment. Then there was a unanimous call for an explanation. Tom
  8249  said he could furnish it, and he did. The tale was long, but brimful of
  8250  interest. There was scarcely an interruption from any one to break the
  8251  charm of its flow. When he had finished, Mr. Jones said:
  8252  
  8253  "I thought I had fixed up a little surprise for this occasion, but it
  8254  don't amount to anything now. This one makes it sing mighty small, I'm
  8255  willing to allow."
  8256  
  8257  The money was counted. The sum amounted to a little over twelve
  8258  thousand dollars. It was more than any one present had ever seen at one
  8259  time before, though several persons were there who were worth
  8260  considerably more than that in property.
  8261  
  8262  
  8263  
  8264  CHAPTER XXXV
  8265  
  8266  THE reader may rest satisfied that Tom's and Huck's windfall made a
  8267  mighty stir in the poor little village of St. Petersburg. So vast a
  8268  sum, all in actual cash, seemed next to incredible. It was talked
  8269  about, gloated over, glorified, until the reason of many of the
  8270  citizens tottered under the strain of the unhealthy excitement. Every
  8271  "haunted" house in St. Petersburg and the neighboring villages was
  8272  dissected, plank by plank, and its foundations dug up and ransacked for
  8273  hidden treasure--and not by boys, but men--pretty grave, unromantic
  8274  men, too, some of them. Wherever Tom and Huck appeared they were
  8275  courted, admired, stared at. The boys were not able to remember that
  8276  their remarks had possessed weight before; but now their sayings were
  8277  treasured and repeated; everything they did seemed somehow to be
  8278  regarded as remarkable; they had evidently lost the power of doing and
  8279  saying commonplace things; moreover, their past history was raked up
  8280  and discovered to bear marks of conspicuous originality. The village
  8281  paper published biographical sketches of the boys.
  8282  
  8283  The Widow Douglas put Huck's money out at six per cent., and Judge
  8284  Thatcher did the same with Tom's at Aunt Polly's request. Each lad had
  8285  an income, now, that was simply prodigious--a dollar for every week-day
  8286  in the year and half of the Sundays. It was just what the minister got
  8287  --no, it was what he was promised--he generally couldn't collect it. A
  8288  dollar and a quarter a week would board, lodge, and school a boy in
  8289  those old simple days--and clothe him and wash him, too, for that
  8290  matter.
  8291  
  8292  Judge Thatcher had conceived a great opinion of Tom. He said that no
  8293  commonplace boy would ever have got his daughter out of the cave. When
  8294  Becky told her father, in strict confidence, how Tom had taken her
  8295  whipping at school, the Judge was visibly moved; and when she pleaded
  8296  grace for the mighty lie which Tom had told in order to shift that
  8297  whipping from her shoulders to his own, the Judge said with a fine
  8298  outburst that it was a noble, a generous, a magnanimous lie--a lie that
  8299  was worthy to hold up its head and march down through history breast to
  8300  breast with George Washington's lauded Truth about the hatchet! Becky
  8301  thought her father had never looked so tall and so superb as when he
  8302  walked the floor and stamped his foot and said that. She went straight
  8303  off and told Tom about it.
  8304  
  8305  Judge Thatcher hoped to see Tom a great lawyer or a great soldier some
  8306  day. He said he meant to look to it that Tom should be admitted to the
  8307  National Military Academy and afterward trained in the best law school
  8308  in the country, in order that he might be ready for either career or
  8309  both.
  8310  
  8311  Huck Finn's wealth and the fact that he was now under the Widow
  8312  Douglas' protection introduced him into society--no, dragged him into
  8313  it, hurled him into it--and his sufferings were almost more than he
  8314  could bear. The widow's servants kept him clean and neat, combed and
  8315  brushed, and they bedded him nightly in unsympathetic sheets that had
  8316  not one little spot or stain which he could press to his heart and know
  8317  for a friend. He had to eat with a knife and fork; he had to use
  8318  napkin, cup, and plate; he had to learn his book, he had to go to
  8319  church; he had to talk so properly that speech was become insipid in
  8320  his mouth; whithersoever he turned, the bars and shackles of
  8321  civilization shut him in and bound him hand and foot.
  8322  
  8323  He bravely bore his miseries three weeks, and then one day turned up
  8324  missing. For forty-eight hours the widow hunted for him everywhere in
  8325  great distress. The public were profoundly concerned; they searched
  8326  high and low, they dragged the river for his body. Early the third
  8327  morning Tom Sawyer wisely went poking among some old empty hogsheads
  8328  down behind the abandoned slaughter-house, and in one of them he found
  8329  the refugee. Huck had slept there; he had just breakfasted upon some
  8330  stolen odds and ends of food, and was lying off, now, in comfort, with
  8331  his pipe. He was unkempt, uncombed, and clad in the same old ruin of
  8332  rags that had made him picturesque in the days when he was free and
  8333  happy. Tom routed him out, told him the trouble he had been causing,
  8334  and urged him to go home. Huck's face lost its tranquil content, and
  8335  took a melancholy cast. He said:
  8336  
  8337  "Don't talk about it, Tom. I've tried it, and it don't work; it don't
  8338  work, Tom. It ain't for me; I ain't used to it. The widder's good to
  8339  me, and friendly; but I can't stand them ways. She makes me get up just
  8340  at the same time every morning; she makes me wash, they comb me all to
  8341  thunder; she won't let me sleep in the woodshed; I got to wear them
  8342  blamed clothes that just smothers me, Tom; they don't seem to any air
  8343  git through 'em, somehow; and they're so rotten nice that I can't set
  8344  down, nor lay down, nor roll around anywher's; I hain't slid on a
  8345  cellar-door for--well, it 'pears to be years; I got to go to church and
  8346  sweat and sweat--I hate them ornery sermons! I can't ketch a fly in
  8347  there, I can't chaw. I got to wear shoes all Sunday. The widder eats by
  8348  a bell; she goes to bed by a bell; she gits up by a bell--everything's
  8349  so awful reg'lar a body can't stand it."
  8350  
  8351  "Well, everybody does that way, Huck."
  8352  
  8353  "Tom, it don't make no difference. I ain't everybody, and I can't
  8354  STAND it. It's awful to be tied up so. And grub comes too easy--I don't
  8355  take no interest in vittles, that way. I got to ask to go a-fishing; I
  8356  got to ask to go in a-swimming--dern'd if I hain't got to ask to do
  8357  everything. Well, I'd got to talk so nice it wasn't no comfort--I'd got
  8358  to go up in the attic and rip out awhile, every day, to git a taste in
  8359  my mouth, or I'd a died, Tom. The widder wouldn't let me smoke; she
  8360  wouldn't let me yell, she wouldn't let me gape, nor stretch, nor
  8361  scratch, before folks--" [Then with a spasm of special irritation and
  8362  injury]--"And dad fetch it, she prayed all the time! I never see such a
  8363  woman! I HAD to shove, Tom--I just had to. And besides, that school's
  8364  going to open, and I'd a had to go to it--well, I wouldn't stand THAT,
  8365  Tom. Looky here, Tom, being rich ain't what it's cracked up to be. It's
  8366  just worry and worry, and sweat and sweat, and a-wishing you was dead
  8367  all the time. Now these clothes suits me, and this bar'l suits me, and
  8368  I ain't ever going to shake 'em any more. Tom, I wouldn't ever got into
  8369  all this trouble if it hadn't 'a' ben for that money; now you just take
  8370  my sheer of it along with your'n, and gimme a ten-center sometimes--not
  8371  many times, becuz I don't give a dern for a thing 'thout it's tollable
  8372  hard to git--and you go and beg off for me with the widder."
  8373  
  8374  "Oh, Huck, you know I can't do that. 'Tain't fair; and besides if
  8375  you'll try this thing just a while longer you'll come to like it."
  8376  
  8377  "Like it! Yes--the way I'd like a hot stove if I was to set on it long
  8378  enough. No, Tom, I won't be rich, and I won't live in them cussed
  8379  smothery houses. I like the woods, and the river, and hogsheads, and
  8380  I'll stick to 'em, too. Blame it all! just as we'd got guns, and a
  8381  cave, and all just fixed to rob, here this dern foolishness has got to
  8382  come up and spile it all!"
  8383  
  8384  Tom saw his opportunity--
  8385  
  8386  "Lookyhere, Huck, being rich ain't going to keep me back from turning
  8387  robber."
  8388  
  8389  "No! Oh, good-licks; are you in real dead-wood earnest, Tom?"
  8390  
  8391  "Just as dead earnest as I'm sitting here. But Huck, we can't let you
  8392  into the gang if you ain't respectable, you know."
  8393  
  8394  Huck's joy was quenched.
  8395  
  8396  "Can't let me in, Tom? Didn't you let me go for a pirate?"
  8397  
  8398  "Yes, but that's different. A robber is more high-toned than what a
  8399  pirate is--as a general thing. In most countries they're awful high up
  8400  in the nobility--dukes and such."
  8401  
  8402  "Now, Tom, hain't you always ben friendly to me? You wouldn't shet me
  8403  out, would you, Tom? You wouldn't do that, now, WOULD you, Tom?"
  8404  
  8405  "Huck, I wouldn't want to, and I DON'T want to--but what would people
  8406  say? Why, they'd say, 'Mph! Tom Sawyer's Gang! pretty low characters in
  8407  it!' They'd mean you, Huck. You wouldn't like that, and I wouldn't."
  8408  
  8409  Huck was silent for some time, engaged in a mental struggle. Finally
  8410  he said:
  8411  
  8412  "Well, I'll go back to the widder for a month and tackle it and see if
  8413  I can come to stand it, if you'll let me b'long to the gang, Tom."
  8414  
  8415  "All right, Huck, it's a whiz! Come along, old chap, and I'll ask the
  8416  widow to let up on you a little, Huck."
  8417  
  8418  "Will you, Tom--now will you? That's good. If she'll let up on some of
  8419  the roughest things, I'll smoke private and cuss private, and crowd
  8420  through or bust. When you going to start the gang and turn robbers?"
  8421  
  8422  "Oh, right off. We'll get the boys together and have the initiation
  8423  to-night, maybe."
  8424  
  8425  "Have the which?"
  8426  
  8427  "Have the initiation."
  8428  
  8429  "What's that?"
  8430  
  8431  "It's to swear to stand by one another, and never tell the gang's
  8432  secrets, even if you're chopped all to flinders, and kill anybody and
  8433  all his family that hurts one of the gang."
  8434  
  8435  "That's gay--that's mighty gay, Tom, I tell you."
  8436  
  8437  "Well, I bet it is. And all that swearing's got to be done at
  8438  midnight, in the lonesomest, awfulest place you can find--a ha'nted
  8439  house is the best, but they're all ripped up now."
  8440  
  8441  "Well, midnight's good, anyway, Tom."
  8442  
  8443  "Yes, so it is. And you've got to swear on a coffin, and sign it with
  8444  blood."
  8445  
  8446  "Now, that's something LIKE! Why, it's a million times bullier than
  8447  pirating. I'll stick to the widder till I rot, Tom; and if I git to be
  8448  a reg'lar ripper of a robber, and everybody talking 'bout it, I reckon
  8449  she'll be proud she snaked me in out of the wet."
  8450  
  8451  
  8452  
  8453  CONCLUSION
  8454  
  8455  SO endeth this chronicle. It being strictly a history of a BOY, it
  8456  must stop here; the story could not go much further without becoming
  8457  the history of a MAN. When one writes a novel about grown people, he
  8458  knows exactly where to stop--that is, with a marriage; but when he
  8459  writes of juveniles, he must stop where he best can.
  8460  
  8461  Most of the characters that perform in this book still live, and are
  8462  prosperous and happy. Some day it may seem worth while to take up the
  8463  story of the younger ones again and see what sort of men and women they
  8464  turned out to be; therefore it will be wisest not to reveal any of that
  8465  part of their lives at present.